Rosslyn
Sanctuary
Southern Oregon Thelemic Community and Organic Farm
Rosslyn Coven of the Hawk & Jackal
Merlin - Oregon - USA
|
|
|
Bios | Contacts | Calendar | Copyright | Hawk & Jackal | Info | Library | Links | News | Photos | Home |
|
|
The Key of the Mysteries
Original key entry by Bill Heidrick, GTG O.T.O.
Extracted from EQ-I-10.AS2/3 by Fr. NChSh, Uraeus-Hadit Camp, O.T.O.
Copyright (c) O.T.O.
O.T.O.
P.O.Box 430
Fairfax, CA 94930
USA
(415) 454-5176 ---- Messages only.
***********************************************************************
(LA CLEF DES GRANDS MYSTERES)
BY
ELIPHAS LEVI
THE KEY OF THE MYSTERIES
ACCORDING TO ENOCH, ABRAHAM, HERMES TRISMEGISTES AND SOLOMON
BY
ELIPHAS LEVI
TRANSLATED, WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY ALEISTER CROWLEY
"Religion says: --- 'Believe and you will understand.' Science comes to say to
you: --- 'Understand and you will believe.'
"At that moment the whole of science will change front; the spirit, so long
dethroned and forgotten, will take its ancient place; it will be demonstrated
that the old traditions are all true, that the whole of paganism is only a
system of corrupted and misplaced truths, that it is sufficient to cleanse them,
so to say, and to put them back again in their place, to see them shine with all
their rays. In a word, all ideas will change, and since on all sides a multitude
of the elect cry in concert, 'Come, Lord, come!' why should you blame the men
who throw themselves forward into that majestic future, and pride themselves on
having foreseen it?"
(J. De Maistre, "Soirees de St. Petersbourg.")
TRANSLATOR'S NOTE
IN the biographical and critical essay which Mr. Waite prefixes to his
"Mysteries of Magic" he says: "A word must be added of the method of this
digest, which claims to be something more than translation and has been
infinitely more laborious. I believe it to be in all respects faithful, and
where it has been necessary or possible for it to be literal, there also it is
invariably literal."
We agree that it is either more or less than translation, and the following
examples selected at hazard in the course of half-an-hour will enable the reader
to judge whether Mr. Waite is acquainted with either French or English:
"Gentilhomme" --- "Gentleman."
"The nameless vice which was reproached "against" the Templars."
"Certaines circonstances ridicules et un proces en escroquerie" --- "Certain
ridiculous processes and a swindling lawsuit."
"Se mele de dogmatiser" --- "Meddles with dogmatism."
"La vie pour lui suffisait a l'expiation des plus grands crimes, puis qu'elle
etait la consequence d'un arret de mort" --- "According to him life was
sufficient for the greatest crimes, since "these" were the result of a death
sentence."
"Vos meilleurs amis ont du concevoir des inquietudes" --- "Your best friends
have been reasonably anxious." (The mistranslation here turns the speech into an
insult.) {v}
"Sacro-sainte" --- "Sacred and saintly."
"Auriculaire" --- "Index."
"N'avez vous pas obtenu tout ce que vous demandiez, et plus que vous ne
demandiez, car vous ne m'aviez pas parle d'argent?" --- "Have you not had all
and more than you wanted, and there has been no question of remuneration?" (This
mistranslation makes nonsense of the whole passage.)
"Eliphas n'etait pas a la question" --- "Eliphas was not under cross-
examination."
"Mauvais plaisant" --- "Vicious jester."
"Si vous n'aviez pas ... vous deviendriez" --- "If you have not ... you may
become." (This mistranslation turns a compliment into an insult.)
"An awful and ineffaceable tableaux."
"Peripeties" --- "Circumstances."
"Il avait fait partie du clerge de Saint Germain l'Auxerrois" --- "He was of the
Society of St. Germain l'Auxerrois."
"Bruit de tempete" --- "Stormy sound."
We are obliged to mention this matter, as Mr. Waite (by persistent self-
assertion) has obtained the reputation of being trustworthy as an editor. On the
contrary, he not only mutilates and distorts his authors, but, as demonstrated
above, he is totally incapable of understanding their simplest phrases and even
their commonest words. {vi}
INTRODUCTION
THIS volume represents the high-water mark of the thought of Eliphas Levi. It
may be regarded as written by him as his Thesis for the Grade of Exempt Adept,
just as his "Ritual and Dogma" was his Thesis for the grade of a Major Adept. He
is, in fact, no longer talking of things as if their sense was fixed and
universal. He is beginning to see something of the contradiction inherent in the
nature of things, or at any rate, he constantly illustrates the fact that the
planes are to be kept separate for practical purposes, although in the final
analysis they turn out to be one. This, and the extraordinarily subtle and
delicate irony of which Eliphas Levi is one of the greatest masters that has
ever lived, have baffled the pedantry and stupidity of such commentators as
Waite. English has hardly a word to express the mental condition of such
unfortunates. "Dummheit," in its strongest German sense, is about the nearest
thing to it. It is as if a geographer should criticize "Gulliver's Travels" from
his own particular standpoint.
When Levi says that all that he asserts as an initiate is subordinate to his
humble submissiveness as a Christian, and then not only remarks that the Bible
and the Qur'an are different translations of the same book, but treats the
Incarnation as an allegory, it is evident that a good deal of submission will be
required. When he agrees with St. Augustine that a thing is not just because God
wills it, but God wills it because it is just, he sees perfectly well that he is
reducing God to a poetic image reflected from his own moral {vii} ideal of
justice, and no amount of alleged orthodoxy can weigh against that statement.
His very defence of the Catholic Hierarchy is a masterpiece of that peculiar
form of conscious sophistry which justifies itself by reducing its conclusion to
zero. One must begin with "one," and that "one" has no particular qualities.
Therefore, so long as you have an authority properly centralized it does not
really matter what that authority is. In the Pope we have such an authority
ready made, and it is the gravest tactical blunder to endeavour to set up an
authority opposed to him. Success in doing so means war, and failure anarchy.
This, however, did not prevent Levi from ceremonially casting a papal crown to
the ground and crying "Death to tyranny and superstition!" in the bosom of a
certain secret Areopagus of which he was the most famous member.
When a man becomes a magician he looks about him for a magical weapon; and,
being probably endowed with that human frailty called laziness, he hopes to find
a weapon ready made. Thus we find the Christian Magus who imposed his power upon
the world taking the existing worships and making a single system combining all
their merits. There is no single feature in Christianity which has not been
taken bodily from the worship of Isis, or of Mithras, or of Bacchus, or of
Adonis, or of Osiris. In modern times again we find Frater Iehi Aour trying to
handle Buddhism. Others again have attempted to use Freemasonry. There have been
even exceptionally foolish magicians who have tried to use a sword long since
rusted.
Wagner illustrates this point very clearly in "Siegfried." The Great Sword
Nothung has been broken, and it is the {viii} only weapon that can destroy the
gods. The dwarf Mime tries uselessly to mend it. When Siegfried comes he makes
no such error. He melts its fragments and forges a new sword. In spite of the
intense labour which this costs, it is the best plan to adopt.
Levi completely failed to capture Catholicism; and his hope of using
Imperialism, his endeavour to persuade the Emperor that he was the chosen
instrument of the Almighty, a belief which would have enabled him to play
Maximus to little Napoleon's Julian, was shattered once for all at Sedan.
It is necessary for the reader to gain this clear conception of Levi's inmost
mind, if he is to reconcile the "contradictions" which leave Waite petulant and
bewildered. It is the sad privilege of the higher order of mind to be able to
see both sides of every question, and to appreciate the fact that both are
equally tenable. Such contradictions can, of course, only be reconciled on a
higher plane, and this method of harmonizing contradictions is, therefore, the
best key to the higher planes.
It seems unnecessary to add anything to these few remarks. This is the only
difficulty in the whole book, though in one or two passages Levi's
extraordinarily keen sense of humour leads him to indulge in a little harmless
bombast. We may instance his remarks on the "Grimoire" of Honorius.
We have said that this is the masterpiece of Levi. He reaches an exaltation of
both thought and language which is equal to that of any other writer known to
us. Once it is understood that it is purely a thesis for the Grade of Exempt
Adept, the reader should have no further difficulty. --- A. C. {ix}
PREFACE
On the brink of mystery, the spirit of man is seized with giddiness. Mystery is
the abyss which ceaselessly attracts our unquiet curiosity by the terror of its
depth.
The greatest mystery of the infinite is the existence of Him for whom alone all
is without mystery.
Comprehending the infinite which is essentially incomprehensible, He is Himself
that infinite and eternally unfathomable mystery; that is to say, that He is, in
all seeming, that supreme absurdity in which Tertullian believed.
Necessarily absurd, since reason must renounce for ever the project of attaining
to Him; necessarily credible, since science and reason, far from demonstrating
that He does not exist, are dragged by the chariot of fatality to believe that
He does exist, and to adore Him themselves with closed eyes.
Why? --- Because this Absurd is the infinite source of reason. The light springs
eternally from the eternal shadows. Science, that Babel Tower of the spirit, may
twist and coil its spirals ever ascending as it will; it may make the earth
tremble, it will never touch the sky.
God is He whom we shall eternally learn to know better, and, consequently, He
whom we shall never know entirely.
The realm of mystery is, then, a field open to the conquests of the
intelligence. March there as boldly as you will, never will you diminish its
extent; you will only alter {xi} its horizons. To know all is an impossible
dream; but woe unto him who dares not to learn all, and who does not know that,
in order to know anything, one must learn eternally!
They say that in order to learn anything well, one must forget it several times.
The world has followed this method. Everything which is to-day debateable had
been solved by the ancients. Before our annals began, their solutions, written
in hieroglyphs, had already no longer any meaning for us. A man has rediscovered
their key; he has opened the cemeteries of ancient science, and he gives to his
century a whole world of forgotten theorems, of syntheses as simple and sublime
as nature, radiating always from unity, and multiplying themselves like numbers
with proportions so exact, that the known demonstrates and reveals the unknown.
To understand this science, is to see God. The author of this book, as he
finishes his work, will think that he has demonstrated it.
Then, when you have seen God, the hierophant will say to you: --- "Turn round!"
and, in the shadow which you throw in the presence of this sun of intelligences,
there will appear to you the devil, that black phantom which you see when your
gaze is not fixed upon God, and when you think that your shadow fills the sky,
--- for the vapours of the earth, the higher they go, seem to magnify it more
and more.
To harmonize in the category of religion science with revelation and reason with
faith, to demonstrate in philosophy the absolute principles which reconcile all
the antinomies, and finally to reveal the universal equilibrium of natural
forces, is the triple object of this work, which will consequently be divided
into three parts. {xii}
We shall exhibit true religion with such characters, that no one, believer or
unbeliever, can fail to recognize it; that will be the absolute in religion. We
shall establish in philosophy the immutable characters of that Truth, which is
in science, "reality;" in judgment, "reason;" and in ethics, "justice." Finally,
we shall acquaint you with the laws of Nature, whose equilibrium is stability,
and we shall show how vain are the phantasies of our imagination before the
fertile realities of movement and of life. We shall also invite the great poets
of the future to create once more the divine comedy, no longer according to the
dreams of man, but according to the mathematics of God.
Mysteries of other worlds, hidden forces, strange revelations, mysterious
illnesses, exceptional faculties, spirits, apparitions, magical paradoxes,
hermetic arcana, we shall say all, and we shall explain all. Who has given us
this power? We do not fear to reveal it to our readers.
There exists an occult and sacred alphabet which the Hebrews attribute to Enoch,
the Egyptians to Thoth or to Hermes Trismegistus, the Greeks to Cadmus and to
Palamedes. This alphabet was known to the followers of Pythagoras, and is
composed of absolute ideas attached to signs and numbers; by its combinations,
it realizes the mathematics of thought. Solomon represented this alphabet by
seventy-two names, written upon thirty-six talismans. Eastern initiates still
call these the "little keys" or clavicles of Solomon. These keys are described,
and their use explained, in a book the source of whose traditional dogma is the
patriarch Abraham. This book is called the Sepher Yetzirah; with the aid of the
Sepher Yetzirah one can penetrate the {xiii} hidden sense of the Zohar, the
great dogmatic treatise of the Qabalah of the Hebrews. The Clavicles of Solomon,
forgotten in the course of time, and supposed lost, have been rediscovered by
ourselves; without trouble we have opened all the doors of those old sanctuaries
where absolute truth seemed to sleep, --- always young, and always beautiful,
like that princess of the childish legend, who, during a century of slumber,
awaits the bridegroom whose mission it is to awaken her.
After our book, there will still be mysteries, but higher and farther in the
infinite depths. This publication is a light or a folly, a mystification or a
monument. Read, reflect, and judge.
{xiv}
THE KEY OF THE MYSTERIES
(LA CLEF DES GRANDS MYSTERES)
BY
ELIPHAS LEVI
{xv}
PART I
RELIGIOUS MYSTERIES
PROBLEMS FOR SOLUTION
I. --- To demonstrate in a certain and absolute manner the existence of God, and
to give an idea of Him which will satisfy all minds.
II. --- To establish the existence of a true religion in such a way as to render
it incontestable.
III. --- To indicate the bearing and the "raison d'etre" of all the mysteries of
the one true and universal religion.
IV. --- To turn the objections of philosophy into arguments favourable to true
religion.
V. --- To draw the boundary between religion and superstition, and to give the
reason of miracles and prodigies.
PRELIMINARY CONSIDERATIONS
WHEN Count Joseph de Maistre, that grand and passionate lover of Logic, said
despairingly, "The world is without religion," he resembled those people who say
rashly "There is no God."
The world, in truth, is without the religion of Count Joseph de Maistre, as it
is probable that such a God as the majority of atheists conceive does not exist.
Religion is an idea based upon one constant and universal {1} fact; man is a
religious animal. The word "religion" has then a necessary and absolute sense.
Nature herself sanctifies the idea which this word represents, and exalts it to
the height of a principle.
The need of believing is closely linked with the need of loving; for that reason
our souls need communion in the same hopes and in the same love. Isolated
beliefs are only doubts: it is the bond of mutual confidence which, by creating
faith, composes religion.
Faith does not invent itself, does not impose itself, does not establish itself
by any political agreement; like life, it manifests itself with a sort of
fatality. The same power which directs the phenomena of nature, extends and
limits the supernatural domain of faith, despite all human foresight. One does
not imagine revelations; one undergoes then, and one believes in them. In vain
does the spirit protest against the obscurities of dogma; it is subjugated by
the attraction of these very obscurities, and often the least docile of
reasoners would blush to accept the title of "irreligious man."
Religion holds a greater place among the realities of life than those who do
without religion --- or pretend to do without it --- affect to believe. All
ideas that raise man above the animal --- moral love, devotion, honour --- are
sentiments essentially religious. The cult of the fatherland and of the family,
fidelity to an oath and to memory, are things which humanity will never abjure
without degrading itself utterly, and which could never exist without the belief
in something greater than mortal life, with all its vicissitudes, its ignorance
and its misery.
If annihilation were the result of all our aspirations to {2} those sublime
things which we feel to be eternal, our only duties would be the enjoyment of
the present, forgetfulness of the past, and carelessness about the future, and
it would be rigorously true to say, as a celebrated sophist once said, that the
man who thinks is a degraded animal.
Moreover, of all human passions, religious passion is the most powerful and the
most lively. It generates itself, whether by affirmation or negation, with an
equal fanaticism, some obstinately affirming the god that they have made in
their own image, the others denying God with rashness, as if they had been able
to understand and to lay waste by a single thought all that world of infinity
which pertains to His great name.
Philosophers have not sufficiently considered the physiological fact of religion
in humanity, for in truth religion exists apart from all dogmatic discussion. It
is a faculty of the human soul just as much as intelligence and love. While man
exists, so will religion. Considered in this light, it is nothing but the need
of an infinite idealism, a need which justifies every aspiration for progress,
which inspires every devotion, which alone prevents virtue and honour from being
mere words, serving to exploit the vanity of the weak and the foolish to the
profit of the strong and the clever.
It is to this innate need of belief that one might justly give the name of
natural religion; and all which tends to clip the wings of these beliefs is, on
the religious plane, in opposition to nature. The essence of the object of
religion is mystery, since faith begins with the unknown, abandoning the rest to
the investigations of science. Doubt is, moreover, the mortal enemy of faith;
faith feels that the intervention of {3} the divine being is necessary to fill
the abyss which separates the finite from the infinite, and it affirms this
intervention with all the warmth of its heart, with all the docility of its
intelligence. If separated from this act of faith, the need of religion finds no
satisfaction, and turns to scepticism and to despair. But in order that the act
of faith should not be an act of folly, reason wishes it to be directed and
ruled. By what? By science? We have seen that science can do nothing here. By
the civil authority? It is absurd. Are our prayers to be superintended by
policemen?
There remains, then, moral authority, which alone is able to constitute dogma
and establish the discipline of worship, in concert this time with the civil
authority, but not in obedience to its orders. It is necessary, in a word, that
faith should give to the religious need a real satisfaction, --- a satisfaction
entire, permanent and indubitable. To obtain that, it is necessary to have the
absolute and invariable affirmation of a dogma preserved by an authorized
hierarchy. It is necessary to have an efficacious cult, giving, with an absolute
faith, a substantial realization of the symbols of belief.
Religion thus understood being the only one which can satisfy the natural need
of religion, it must be the only really natural religion. We arrive, without
help from others, at this double definition, that true natural religion is
revealed religion. The true revealed religion is the hierarchical and
traditional religion, which affirms itself absolutely, above human discussion,
by communion in faith, hope, and charity.
Representing the moral authority, and realizing it by the efficacy of its
ministry, the priesthood is as holy and infallible as humanity is subject to
vice and to error. The priest, {4} "qua" priest, is always the representative of
God. Of little account are the faults or even the crimes of man. When Alexander
VI consecrated his bishops, it was not the poisoner who laid his hands upon
them, it was the pope. Pope Alexander VI never corrupted or falsified the dogmas
which condemned him, or the sacraments which in his hands saved others, and did
not justify him. At all times and in all places there have been liars and
criminals, but in the hierarchical and divinely authorized Church there have
never been, and there will never be, either bad popes or bad priests. "Bad" and
"priest" form an oxymoron.
We have mentioned Alexander VI, and we think that this name will be sufficient
without other memories as justly execrated as his being brought up against us.
Great criminals have been able to dishonour themselves doubly because of the
sacred character with which they were invested, but they had not the power to
dishonour that character, which remains always radiant and splendid above fallen
humanity.<<A dog has six legs. Definition. It is no answer to this to show that
all dogs have four. --- O.M.>>
We have said that there is no religion without mysteries; let us add that there
are no mysteries without symbols. The symbol, being the formula or the
expression of the mystery, only expresses its unknown depth by paradoxical
images borrowed from the known. The symbolic form, having for its object to
characterize what is above scientific reason, should necessarily find itself
without that reason: hence the celebrated and perfectly just remark of a Father
of the Church: "I believe because it is absurd. Credo quia absurdum."
If science were to affirm what it did not know, it would {5} destroy itself.
Science will then never be able to perform the work of faith, any more than
faith can decide in a matter of science. An affirmation of faith with which
science is rash enough to meddle can then be nothing but an absurdity for it,
just as a scientific statement, if given us as an article of faith, would be an
absurdity on the religious plane. To know and to believe are two terms which can
never be confounded.
It would be equally impossible to oppose the one to the other. It is impossible,
in fact, to believe the contrary of what one knows without ceasing, for that
very reason, to know it; and it is equally impossible to achieve a knowledge
contrary to what one believes without ceasing immediately to believe.
To deny or even to contest the decisions of faith in the name of science is to
prove that one understands neither science nor faith: in fine, the mystery of a
God of three persons is not a problem of mathematics; the incarnation of the
Word is not a phenomenon in obstetrics; the scheme of redemption stands apart
from the criticism of the historian. Science is absolutely powerless to decide
whether we are right or wrong in believing or disbelieving dogma; it can only
observe the results of belief, and if faith evidently improves men, if,
moreover, faith is in itself, considered as a physiological fact, evidently a
necessity and a force, science will certainly be obliged to admit it, and take
the wise part of always reckoning with it.
Let us now dare to affirm that there exists an immense fact equally appreciable
both by faith and science; a fact which makes God visible (in a sense) upon
earth; a fact incontestable and of universal bearing; this fact is the
manifestation in the world, beginning from the epoch when the {6} Christian
revelation was made, of a spirit unknown to the ancients, of a spirit evidently
divine, more positive than science in its works, in its aspirations, more
magnificently ideal than the highest poetry, a spirit for which it was necessary
to create a new name, a name altogether unheard<<Who, however, had the word laid
aside against the time when Paul should give it a meaning. --- O.M.>> in the
sanctuaries of antiquity. This name was created, and we shall demonstrate that
this name, this word, is, in religion, as much for science as for faith, the
expression of the absolute. The word is CHARITY, and the spirit of which we
speak is the "spirit of charity."
Before charity, faith prostrates itself, and conquered science bows. There is
here evidently something greater than humanity; charity proves by its works that
it is not a dream. It is stronger than all the passions; it triumphs over
suffering and over death; it makes God understood by every heart, and seems
already to fill eternity by the begun realization of its legitimate hopes.
Before charity alive and in action who is the Proudhon who dares blaspheme? Who
is the Voltaire who dares laugh?
Pile one upon the other the sophisms of Diderot, the critical arguments of
Strauss, the "Ruins" of Volney, so well named, for this man could make nothing
but "ruins," the blasphemies of the revolution whose voice was extinguished once
in blood, and once again in the silence of contempt; join to it all that the
future may hold for us of monstrosities and of vain dreams; then will there come
the humblest and the simplest of all sisters of charity, --- the world will
leave there all its follies, and all its crimes, and all its dreams, to bow
before this sublime reality. {7}
Charity! word divine, sole word which makes God understood, word which contains
a universal revelation! "Spirit" of "charity," alliance of two words, which are
a complete solution and a complete promise! To what question, in fine, do these
two words not find an answer?
What is God for us, if not the spirit of charity? What is orthodoxy? Is it not
the spirit of charity which refuses to discuss faith lest it should trouble the
confidence of simple souls, and disturb the peace of universal
communion?<<Sublime houmour of sophistry! Levi asserts, "Any lie will serve,
provided every one acquiesces in it," and reprehends Christianity for disturbing
the peace of Paganism. "Or," indicates that Christianity is but syncretic-eclectic
Paganism, and defends it on this ground. --- O.M.>> And the universal church, is
it any other thing than a communion in the spirit of charity? It is by the
spirit of charity that the church is infallible. It is the spirit of charity
which is the divine virtue of the priesthood.
Duty of man, guarantee of his rights, proof of his immortality, eternity of
happiness commencing for him upon the earth, glorious aim given to his
existence, goal and path of all his struggles, perfection of his individual,
civil and religious morality, the spirit of charity understands all, and is able
to hope all, undertake all, and accomplish all.
It is by the spirit of charity that Jesus expiring on the cross gave a son to
His mother in the person of St. John, and, triumphing over the anguish of the
most frightful torture, gave a cry of deliverance and of salvation, saying,
"Father, into Thy hands I commend my spirit!"
It is by charity that twelve Galilean artisans conquered the world; they loved
truth more than life, and they went without followers to speak it to peoples and
to kings; tested by torture, {8} they were found faithful. They showed to the
multitude a living immortality in their death, and they watered the earth with a
blood whose heat could not be extinguished, because they were burning with the
ardours of charity.
It is by charity that the Apostles built up their Creed. They said that to
believe together was worth more than to doubt separately; they constituted the
hierarchy on the basis of obedience --- rendered so noble and so great by the
spirit of charity, that to serve in this manner is to reign; they formulated the
faith of all and the hope of all, and they put this Creed in the keeping of the
charity of all. Woe to the egoist who appropriates to himself a single word of
this inheritance of the Word; he is a deicide, who wishes to dismember the body
of the Lord.
This creed is the holy ark of charity; whoso touches it is stricken by eternal
death, for charity withdraws itself from him. It is the sacred inheritance of
our children, it is the price of the blood of our fathers!
It is by charity that the martyrs took consolation in the prisons of the
Caesars, and won over to their belief even their warders and their executioners.
It is in the name of charity that St. Martin of Tours protested against the
torture of the Priscillians,<<The Priscillianist heresy was disturbing the
Church, especially in Spain. The Emperor Maximus, a Spaniard, was inclined to
put it down with a strong hand and confiscate the heretics' property. The Gallic
clergy hounded him on, and the Councils of Bordeaux and Saragossa encouraged
him. Two Spanish priests, "Ithacus" and "Idacus," clamoured for the heretics'
punishment by the secular arm. But St. Martin of Tours, stalwart champion of
orthodoxy as he was, resisted, and in 385 he went to Treves to plead for the
persecuted Priscillianists. He prevailed. So long as Martin stayed at court the
Ithacan party was foiled. When he left they had the upper hand again, and
Maximus gave the suppression of the heretics into the hands of the unrelenting
Evodious. Priscillian was killed. Exile and death were the fate of his
followers. Heresy blazed the stronger, and a worse persecution was threatened.
Then St. Martin left his cell at Marmontier, and set out a second time to Treves.
News of the old man coming along the road on his ass reached his enemies. They
met him at the gate and refused him entrance. "But," said Martin, "I come with
the peace of Jesus Christ." And such was the power of this presence that they
could not close the city gates against him. But the palace doors were closed.
Martin refused to see the Ithacans or to receive the Communion with them, and
their fury at this is eloquent testimony of their sense of his power. They
appealed to Maximus, who delivered over Martin bound to them. But in the night
Maximus sent for Martin, argued, coaxed, persuaded him to compromise. The schism
would be great, he persisted, if Martin continued to exasperate the Ithacans.
Martin said he had nothing to do with persecutors. In wrath the Emperor let him
go, and gave orders to the Tribunes to depart to Spain and carry out a rigorous
Inquisition. Then Martin returned to Maximus and bargained. Let this order be
revoked, and he would receive Communion with the Ithacans next day at the
election of the new Archbishop. The order was revoked, and Martin kept his word.
But when he knew the cause of Humanity safe, he departed, and on his way back to
Tours experienced a great agony. Why had he had dealings with the Ithacans? In a
lonely place he pondered sadly. An angel spoke to him. "Martin, you do right to
be sad, but it was the only way." Never again did he go to any council. He was
wont to say with tears that if he had saved the heretics he himself had lost
power over men and over demons.
They have outraged the meaning of the episode who explain Martin's protest as
merely against the surrender of the Church to Secular Power. It was "lese-humanite"
of which he held the Ithacans guilty.
St. Martin of Tours was often called Martin the Thaumaturgist. He was noted for
his power over animals.>> and separated {9} himself from the communion of the
tyrant who wished to impose faith by the sword.
It is by charity that so great a crowd of saints have forced the world to accept
them as expiation for the crimes committed in the name of religion itself, and
the scandals of the profaned sanctuary.
It is by charity that St. Vincent de Paul and Fenelon compelled the admiration
of even the most impious centuries, and quelled in advance the laughter of the
children of Voltaire before the imposing dignity of their virtues. 10}
It is by charity, finally, that the folly of the cross has become the wisdom of
the nations, because every noble heart has understood that it is greater to
believe with those who love, and who devote themselves, than to doubt with the
egotists and with the slaves of pleasure. {11}
FIRST ARTICLE
SOLUTION OF THE FIRST PROBLEM
THE TRUE GOD
GOD can only be defined by faith; science can neither deny nor affirm that He
exists.
God is the absolute object of human faith. In the infinite, He is the supreme
and creative intelligence of order. In the world, He is the spirit of charity.
Is the Universal Being a fatal machine which eternally grinds down intelligences
by chance, or a providential intelligence which directs forces in order to
ameliorate minds?
The first hypothesis is repugnant to reason; it is pessimistic and immoral.
Science and reason ought then to accept the second.
Yes, Proudhon, God is an hypothesis, but an hypothesis so necessary, that
without it, all theorems become absurd or doubtful.
For initiates of the Qabalah, God is the absolute unity which creates and
animates numbers.
The unity of the human intelligence demonstrates the unity of God.
The key of numbers is that of creeds, because signs are {12} analogical figures
of the harmony which proceeds from numbers.
Mathematics could never demonstrate blind fatality, because they are the
expression of the exactitude which is the character of the highest reason.
Unity demonstrates the analogy of contraries; it is the foundation, the
equilibrium, and the end of numbers. The act of faith starts from unity, and
returns to unity.
{Illustration on page 13 described:
This is titled below: "THE SIGN OF THE GRAND ARCANUM G.'. A.'."
The figure is contained within a rectangle of width about half height. The main
element is a circle, bottom half shaded, pierced through on the vertical
diameter from below by a vertical sword or baton. The "sword" has a right hand
holding the pommel below, issuing from a cloud to lower right. The hilt is not
evident simply, but suggested by two tails of serpents crossing just below the
lower limit of the circle. To either side of the pommel beneath the snake tails
are the letters "FIN" to left and "AL" to right. The point of the sword above
the upper limit of the circle is buttoned by a fleur-de-lis. The two serpents
are entwined about the sword to form a caduceus with two circles vertically
circumscribed within the greater circle. These serpents are billed. There are
two shaded bands on the two horizontal diameters of the serpent circles. Five
Hebrew letters are along the sword, only the topmost upon the blade and the
others beneath: Top quarter --- HB:Yod , next quarter --- HB:Aleph , center ---
HB:Shin , next quarter is probably but not certainly HB:Mem , bottom quarter is
an inverted HB:Heh . The upper half of the upper serpent circle has Aleph-Heh-Yod-Heh
just above the diameter bar, and the lower quarter of the lower serpent circle
has the same inverted just below the diameter bar. There is an "X" of
thin line diameters across the large circle. At the horizontal diameter of the
large circle, just above to the left "THROSNE" and to the right "DE JVSTICE".
Oriented about the circle to be read from the center are the following words: At
left outside "COVRONNE", at top and split "MED" "IATE", at right "ECLESIASTIQVE",
at bottom and split "DIR" "ECTE". Two words in italics extend just above the
horizontal diameter in invisible extensis and through the rectangle: to left "HARMONIE",
to right "CEELESTE". Above the button of the sword is a small circle, and to the
left of that "Tzaddi-Dalet-Qof", to the right "Peh-Lamed-Kophfinal" (possibly "Mem-Lamed-Kophfinal"
or "Samekh-Lamed-Kophfinal"). Below this, interrupted by the button are two
texts: to the right: "(?)Aleph-Samekh-Peh-Kophfinal Bet-Shin-Vau-Shin-Nunfinal
Heh-Bet-Yod-Resh " (First word doubtful, text referred to Dan. 8, where it must
be altered from Dan. 8, 2: "Vau-Aleph-Nun-Yod Bet-Shin-Vau-Shin-Nunfinal
Heh-Bet-Yod-Resh-Heh" "I was in Shushan castle". This variant could be
translated as "sheath in Shushan castle".) Beneath this: "DANIEL ch. 8." The
text to the left cannot be rendered accurately owing to similarity of letter
shapes and no direct bearing to the text cited. It looks like: "Aleph-Taw-Tet-Dalet-Resh-Vau-Shin
Samekh-Resh-Vau-Koph-Yod", but that is not likely to be even close. Beneath this
is the citation "Nehemie ch.1 v.1" which does not contain any part of this
versicle, but which does mention the castle at Shusah, cited in the versicle to
the right. Possibly the whole thing is a continuation of a paraphrase of Daniel
8, 2, with the text unclear because of letter shapes poorly written. Lastly, to
the left outside of the upper serpent circle: "SENS"; and to the right inside
the same: "RASON" --- both oriented to be read from the center.} {13}
We shall now sketch out an explanation of the Bible by the aid of numbers, for
the Bible is the book of the images of God.
We shall ask numbers to give us the reason of the dogmas of eternal religion;
numbers will always reply by reuniting themselves in the synthesis of unity.
The following pages are simply outlines of qabalistic hypotheses; they stand
apart from faith, and we indicate them only as curiosities of research. It is no
part of our task to make innovations in dogma, and what we assert in our
character as an initiate is entirely subordinate to our submission in our
character as a Christian.<<This passage is typical of the sublime irony of Levi,
and the key to the whole of his paradoxes. --- TRANS.>>
SKETCH OF THE PROPHETIC THEOLOGY
OF NUMBERS
I
UNITY
UNITY is the principle and the synthesis of numbers; it is the idea of God and
of man; it is the alliance of reason and of faith.
Faith cannot be opposed to reason; it is made necessary by love, it is identical
with hope. To love is to believe and hope; and this triple outburst of the soul
is called virtue, because, in order to make it, courage is necessary. But would
there be any courage in that, if doubt were not possible? Now, to be able to
doubt, is to doubt. Doubt is the force {14} which balances faith, and it
constitutes the whole merit of faith.
Nature herself induces us to believe; but the formulae of faith are social
expressions of the tendencies of faith at a given epoch. It is that which proves
the Church to be infallible, evidentially and in fact.
God is necessarily the most unknown of all beings because He is only defined by
negative experience; He is all that we are not, He is the infinite opposed to
the finite by hypothesis.
Faith, and consequently hope and love, are so free that man, far from being able
to impose them on others, does not even impose them on himself.
"These," says religion, "are graces." Now, is it conceivable that grace should
be subject to demand or exaction; that is to say, could any one wish to force
men to a thing which comes freely and without price from heaven? One must not do
more than desire it for them.
To reason concerning faith is to think irrationally, since the object of faith
is outside the universe of reason. If one asks me: --- "Is there a God?" I
reply, "I believe it." "But are you sure of it?" --- "If I were sure of it, I
should not believe it, I should know it."
The formulation of faith is to agree upon the terms of the common hypothesis.
Faith begins where science ends. To enlarge the scope of science is apparently
to diminish that of faith; but in reality, it is to enlarge it in equal
proportion, for it is to amplify its base.
One can only define the unknown by its supposed and supposable relations with
the known. {15}
Analogy was the sole dogma of the ancient magi. This dogma may indeed be called
"mediator," for it is half scientific, half hypothetical; half reason, and half
poetry. This dogma has been, and will always be, the father of all others.
What is the Man-God? He who realizes, in the most human life, the most divine
ideal.
Faith is a divination of intelligence and of love, when these are directed by
the pointings of nature and of reason.
It is then of the essence of the things of faith to be inaccessible to science,
doubtful for philosophy, and undefined for certainty.
Faith is an hypothetical realization and a conventional determination of the
last aims of hope. It is the attachment to the visible sign of the things which
one does not see.
"Faith is the substance of things hoped for, the evidence of things not seen."
To affirm without folly that God is or that He is not, one must begin with a
reasonable or unreasonable definition of God. Now, this definition, in order to
be reasonable, must be hypothetical, analogical, and the negation of the known
finite. It is possible to deny a particular God, but the absolute God can no
more be denied than He can be proved; He is a reasonable supposition in whom one
believes.
"Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God," said the Master; to see
with the heart is to believe; and if this faith is attached to the true good, it
can never be deceived, provided that it does not seek to define too much in
accordance with the dangerous inductions which spring from personal ignorance.
Our judgments in questions of faith apply to {16} ourselves; it will be done to
us as we have believed; that is to say, we create ourselves in the image of our
ideal.
"Those who make their gods become like unto them," says the psalmist, "and all
they that put their trust in them."
The divine ideal of the ancient world made the civilization which came to an
end, and one must not despair of seeing the god of our barbarous fathers become
the devil of our more enlightened children. One makes devils with cast-off
gods,<<Christianity has fallen, and so Christ has already become the 'devil' to
such thinkers as Nietzsche and Crowley. --- O.M.>> and Satan is only so
incoherent and so formless because he is made up of all the rags of ancient
theogonies. He is the sphinx without a secret, the riddle without an answer, the
mystery without truth, the absolute without reality and without light.
Man is the son of God because God, manifested, realized, and incarnated upon
earth, called Himself the Son of man.
It is after having made God in the image of His intelligence and of His love,
that humanity has understood the sublime Word who said "Let there be light!"
Man is the form of the divine thought, and God is the idealized synthesis of
human thought.
Thus the Word of God reveals man, and the Word of man reveals God.
Man is the God of the world, and God is the man of heaven.
Before saying "God wills," man has willed.
In order to understand and honour Almighty God, man must first be free.
Had he obeyed and abstained from the fruit of the tree of knowledge through
fear, man would have been innocent and {17} stupid as the lamb, sceptical and
rebellious as the angel of light. He himself cut the umbilical cord of his
simplicity, and, falling free upon the earth, dragged God with him in his fall.
And therefore, from this sublime fall, he rises again glorious, with the great
convict of Calvary, and enters with Him into the kingdom of heaven.
For the kingdom of heaven belongs to intelligence and love, both children of
liberty.
God has shown liberty to man in the image of a lovely woman, and in order to
test his courage, He made the phantom of death pass between her and him.
Man loved, and felt himself to be God; he gave for her what God had just
bestowed upon him --- eternal hope.
He leapt towards his bride across the shadow of death.
Man possessed liberty; he had embraced life.
Expiate now thy glory, O Prometheus!
Thy heart, ceaselessly devoured, cannot die; it is thy vulture, it is Jupiter,
who will die!
One day we shall awake at last from the painful dreams of a tormented life; our
ordeal will be finished, and we shall be sufficiently strong against sorrow to
be immortal.
Then we shall live in God with a more abundant life, and we shall descend into
His works with the light of His thought, we shall be borne away into the
infinite by the whisper of His love.
We shall be without doubt the elder brethren of a new race, the angels of
posterity.
Celestial messengers, we shall wander in immensity, and the stars will be our
gleaming ships. {18}
We shall transform ourselves into sweet visions to calm weeping eyes; we shall
gather radiant lilies in unknown meadows, and we shall scatter their dew upon
the earth.
We shall touch the eyelid of the sleeping child, and rejoice the heart of its
mother with the spectacle of the beauty of her well-beloved son!
II
THE BINARY
THE binary is more particularly the number of woman, mate of man and mother of
society.
Man is love in intelligence; woman is intelligence in love.
Woman is the smile of the Creator content with himself, and it is after making
her that He rested, says the divine parable.
Woman stands before man because she is mother, and all is forgiven her in
advance, because she brings forth in sorrow.
Woman initiated herself first into immortality through death; then man saw her
to be so beautiful, and understood her to be so generous, that he refused to
survive her, and loved her more than his life, more than his eternal happiness.
Happy outlaw, since she has been given to him as companion in his exile!
But the children of Cain have revolted against the mother of Abel; they have
enslaved their mother.
The beauty of woman has become a prey for the brutality of such men as cannot
love.
Thus woman closed her heart as if it were a secret sanctuary, and said to men
unworthy of her: "I am virgin, {19} but I will to become mother, and my son will
teach you to love me."
O Eve! Salutation and adoration in thy fall!
O Mary! Blessings and adoration in thy sufferings and in thy glory!
Crucified and holy one who didst survive thy God that thou mightst bury thy son,
be thou for us the final word of the divine revelation!
Moses called God "Lord"; Jesus called Him "My Father," and we, thinking of thee,
may say to Providence, "You are our mother."
Children of woman, let us forgive fallen woman!
Children of woman, let us adore regenerate woman!
Children of woman, who have slept upon her breast, been cradled in her arms, and
consoled by her caresses, let us love her, and let us love each other!
III
THE TERNARY
THE Ternary is the number of creation.
God creates Himself eternally, and the infinite which He fills with His works is
an incessant and infinite creation.
Supreme love contemplates itself in beauty as in a mirror, and It essays all
forms as adornments, for It is the lover of life.
Man also affirms himself and creates himself; he adorns himself with his
trophies of victory, he enlightens himself with his own conceptions, he clothes
himself with his works as with a wedding garment. {20}
The great week of creation has been imitated by human genius, divining the forms
of nature.
Every day has furnished a new revelation, every new king of the world has been
for a day the image and the incarnation of God! Sublime dream which explains the
mysteries of India, and justifies all symbolisms!
The lofty conception of the man-God corresponds to the creation of Adam, and
Christianity, like the first days of man in the earthly paradise, has been only
an aspiration and a widowhood.
We wait for the worship of the bride and of the mother; we shall aspire to the
wedding of the New Covenant.
Then the poor, the blind, the outlaws of the old world will be invited to the
feast, and will receive a wedding garment. They will gaze the one upon the other
with inexpressible tenderness and a smile that is ineffable because they have
wept so long.
IV
THE QUATERNARY
THE Quaternary is the number of force. It is the ternary completed by its
product, the rebellious unity reconciled to the sovereign trinity.
In the first fury of life, man, having forgotten his mother, no longer
understood God but as an inflexible and jealous father.
The sombre Saturn, armed with his parricidal scythe, set himself to devour his
children.
Jupiter had eyebrows which shook Olympus; Jehovah wielded thunders which
deafened the solitudes of Sinai. {21}
Nevertheless, the father of men, being on occasion drunken like Noah, let the
world perceive the mysteries of life.
Psyche, made divine by her torments, became the bride of Eros; Adonis, raised
from death, found again his Venus in Olympus; Job, victorious over evil,
recovered more than he had lost.
The law is a test of courage.
To love life more than one fears the menaces of death is to merit life.
The elect are those who dare; woe to the timid!
Thus the slaves of law, who make themselves the tyrants of conscience and the
servants of fear, and those who begrudge that man should hope, and the Pharisees
of all the synagogues and of all the churches, are those who receive the
reproofs and the curses of the Father.
Was not the Christ excommunicated and crucified by the synagogue?
Was not Savonarola burned by the order of the sovereign pontiff of the Christian
religion?
Are not the Pharisees to-day just what they were in the time of Caiaphas?
If any one speaks to them in the name of intelligence and love, will they
listen?
In rescuing the children of liberty from the tyranny of the Pharaohs, Moses
inaugurated the reign of the Father.
In breaking the insupportable yoke of mosaic pharisaism, Jesus welcomed all men
to the brotherhood of the only son of God.
When the last ideals fall, when the last material chains of conscience break,
when the last of them that killed the {22} prophets and the last of them that
stifled the Word are confounded, then will be the reign of the Holy Ghost.
Then, Glory to the Father who drowned the host of Pharaoh in the Red Sea!
Glory to the Son, who tore the veil of the temple, and whose cross, overweighing
the crown of the Caesars, broke the forehead of the Caesars against the earth!
Glory to the Holy Ghost, who shall sweep from the earth by His terrible breath
all the thieves and all the executioners, to make room for the banquet of the
children of God!
Glory to the Holy Ghost, who has promised victory over earth and over heaven to
the angel of liberty!
The angel of liberty was born before the dawn of the first day, before even the
awakening of intelligence, and God called him the morning star.
O Lucifer! Voluntarily and disdainfully thou didst detach thyself from the
heaven where the sun drowned thee in his splendour, to plow with thine own rays
the unworked fields of night!
Thou shinest when the sun sets, and thy sparkling gaze precedes the daybreak!
Thou fallest to rise again; thou tastest of death to understand life better!
For the ancient glories of the world, thou art the evening star; for truth
renascent, the lovely star of dawn.
Liberty is not licence, for licence is tyranny.
Liberty is the guardian of duty, because it reclaims right.<<Right --- 'droit'
--- a word much in evidence at the time, with no true English equivalent, save
in such phrases as 'the right to work.' By itself it is only used in the plural,
which will not do here, and throughout this treatise. --- TRANS.>>
Lucifer, of whom the dark ages have made the genius of {23} evil, will be truly
the angel of light when, having conquered liberty at the price of infamy, he
will make use of it to submit himself to eternal order, inaugurating thus the
glories of voluntary obedience.
Right is only the root of duty; one must possess in order to give.
This is how a lofty and profound poetry explains the fall of the angels.
God hath given to His spirits light and life; then He said to them: "Love!"
"What is --- to love?" replied the spirits.
"To love is to give oneself to others," replied God. "Those who love will
suffer, but they will be loved."
"We have the right to give nothing, and we wish to suffer nothing," said the
spirits, hating love.
"Remain in your right," answered God, "and let us separate! I and Mine wish to
suffer and even to die, to love. It is our duty!"
The fallen angel is then he who, from the beginning, refused to love; he does
not love, and that is his whole torture; he does not give, and that is his
poverty; he does not suffer, and that is his nothingness; he does not die, and
that is his exile.
The fallen angel is not Lucifer the light-bearer; it is Satan, who calumniated
love.
To be rich is to give; to give nothing is to be poor; to live is to love; to
love nothing is to be dead; to be happy is to devote oneself; to exist only for
oneself is to cast away oneself, and to exile oneself in hell.
Heaven is the harmony of generous thoughts; hell is the conflict of cowardly
instincts. {24}
The man of right is Cain who kills Abel from envy; the man of duty is Abel who
dies for Cain for love.
And such has been the mission of Christ, the great Abel of humanity.
It is not for right that we should dare all, it is for duty.
Duty is the expansion and the enjoyment of liberty; isolated right is the father
of slavery.
Duty is devotion; right is selfishness.
Duty is sacrifice; right is theft and rapine.
Duty is love, and right is hate.
Duty is infinite life; right is eternal death.
If one must fight to conquer right, it is only to acquire the power of duty:
what use have we for freedom, unless to love and to devote ourselves to God?
If one must break the law, it is when law imprisons love in fear.
"He that saveth his life shall lose it," says the holy Book; "and he who
consents to lose it will save it."
Duty is love; perish every obstacle to love! Silence, ye oracles of hate!
Destruction to the false gods of selfishness and fear! Shame to the slaves, the
misers of love!
God loves prodigal children!
V
THE QUINARY
THE Quinary is the number of religion, for it is the number of God united to
that of woman.<<Almost too visible a sneer of the Atheist and woman-despiser.
--- O.M.>> {25}
Faith is not the stupid credulity of an awestruck ignorance.
Faith is the consciousness and the confidence of Love.
Faith is the cry of reason, which persists in denying the absurd, even in the
presence of the unknown.
Faith is a sentiment necessary to the soul, just as breathing is to life; it is
the dignity of courage, and the reality of enthusiasm.
Faith does not consist of the affirmation of this symbol or that, but of a
genuine and constant aspiration towards the truths which are veiled by all
symbolisms.
If a man rejects an unworthy idea of divinity, breaks its false images, revolts
against hateful idolaters, you will call him an atheist!
The authors of the persecutions in fallen Rome called the first Christians
atheists, because they did not adore the idols of Caligula or of Nero.
To deny a religion, even to deny all religions rather than adhere to formulae
which conscience rejects, is a courageous and sublime act of faith. Every man
who suffers for his convictions is a martyr of faith.
He explains himself badly, it may be, but he prefers justice and truth to
everything; do not condemn him without understanding him.
To believe in the supreme truth is not to define it, and to declare that one
believes in it is to recognize that one does not know it.
The Apostle St. Paul declares all faith contained in these two things: --- To
believe that God is, and that He rewards them who seek Him. {26}
Faith is a greater thing than all religions, because it states the articles of
belief with less precision.
Any dogma constitutes but a belief, and belongs to our particular communion;
faith is a sentiment which is common to the whole of humanity.
The more one discusses with the object of obtaining greater accuracy, the less
one believes; every new dogma is a belief which a sect appropriates to itself,
and thus, in some sort, steals from universal faith.
Let us leave sectarians to make and remake their dogmas; let us leave the
superstitious to detail and formulate their superstitions. As the Master said,
"Let the dead bury their dead!" Let us believe in the indicible truth; let us
believe in that Absolute which reason admits without understanding it; let us
believe in what we feel without knowing it!
Let us believe in the supreme reason!
Let us believe in Infinite Love, and pity the stupidities of scholasticism and
the barbarities of false religion!
O man! Tell me what thou hopest, and I will tell thee what thou art worth.
Thou dost pray, thou dost fast, thou dost keep vigil; dost thou then believe
that so thou wilt escape alone, or almost alone, from the enormous ruin of
mankind --- devoured by a jealous God? Thou art impious, and a hypocrite.
Dost thou turn life into an orgie, and hope for the slumber of nothingness? Thou
art sick, and insensate.
Art thou ready to suffer as others and for others, and hope for the salvation of
all? Thou art a wise and just man.
To hope is to fear not.
To be afraid of God, what blasphemy! {27}
The act of hope is prayer.
Prayer is the flowering of the soul in eternal wisdom and in eternal love.
It is the gaze of the spirit towards truth, and the sigh of the heart towards
supreme beauty.
It is the smile of the child upon its mother.
It is the murmur of the lover, who reaches out towards the kisses of his
mistress.
It is the soft joy of a loving soul as it expands in an ocean of love.
It is the sadness of the bride in the absence of the bridegroom.
It is the sigh of the traveller who thinks of his fatherland.
It is the thought of the poor man who works to support his wife and children.
Let us pray in silence; let us raise toward our unknown Father a look of
confidence and of love; let us accept with faith and resignation the part which
He assigns to us in the toils of life, and every throb of our hearts will be a
word of prayer!
Have we need to inform God of what we ask from Him? Does not He know what is
necessary for us?
If we weep, let us offer Him our tears; if we rejoice, let us turn towards Him
our smile; if He smite us, let us bow the head; if He caress us, let us sleep
within His arms!
Our prayer will be perfect, when we pray without knowing whom we pray.
Prayer is not a noise which strikes the ear; it is a silence which penetrates
the heart. {28}
Soft tears come to moisten the eyes, and sighs escape like incense smoke.
One feels oneself in love, ineffably in love, with all that is beauty, truth,
and justice; one throbs with a new life, and one fears no more to die. For
prayer is the eternal life of intelligence and love; it is the life of God upon
earth.
Love one another --- that is the Law and the Prophets! Meditate, and understand
this word.
And when you have understood, read no more, seek no more, doubt no more ---
love!
Be no more wise, be no more learned --- love! That is the whole doctrine of true
religion; religion means charity, and God Himself is only love.
I have already said to you, to love is to give.
The impious man is he who absorbs others.
The pious man is he who loses himself in humanity.
If the heart of man concentrate in himself the fire with which God animates it,
it is a hell which devours all, and fills itself only with ashes; if he radiates
it without, it becomes a tender sun of love.
Man owes himself to his family; his family owes itself to the fatherland; and
the fatherland to humanity.
The egoism of man merits isolation and despair; that of the family, ruin and
exile; that of the fatherland, war and invasion.
The man who isolates himself from every human love, saying, "I will serve God,"
deceives himself. For, said St. John the Apostle, if he loveth not his neighbour
whom he hath see, how shall he love God whom he hath not seen?
One must render to God that which is God's, but one must not refuse even to
Caesar that which is Caesar's. {29}
God is He who gives life; Caesar can only give death.
One must love God, and not fear Caesar; as it is written in the Holy Book, "He
that taketh the sword shall perish by the sword."
You wish to be good? Then be just. You wish to be just? Then be free.
The vices which make man like the brute are the first enemies of his liberty.
Consider the drunkard, and tell me if this unclean brute can be called free!
The miser curses the life of his father, and, like the crow, hungers for
corpses.
The goal of the ambitious man is --- ruins; it is the delirium of envy! The
debauchee spits upon the breast of his mother, and fills with abortions the
entrails of death.
All these loveless hearts are punished by the most cruel of all tortures, hate.
Because --- take it to heart! --- the expiation is implicit in the sin.
The man who does evil is like an earthen pot ill-made; he will break himself:
fatality wills it.
With the debris of the worlds, God makes stars; with the debris of souls He
makes angels.
VI
THE SENARY
THE Senary is the number of initiation by ordeal; it is the number of
equilibrium, it is the hieroglyph of the knowledge of Good and Evil. {30}
He who seeks the origin of evil, seeks the source of what is not.
Evil is the disordered appetite of good, the unfruitful attempt of an unskilful
will.
Every one possesses the fruit of his work, and poverty is only the spur to toil.
For the flock of men, suffering is like the shepherd dog, who bites the wool of
the sheep to put them back in the right way.
It is because of shadow that we are able to see light; because of cold that we
feel heat; because of pain that we are sensible to pleasure.
Evil is then for us the occasion and the beginning of good.
But, in the dreams of our imperfect intelligence, we accuse the work of
Providence, through failing to understand it.
We resemble the ignorant person who judges the picture by the beginning of the
sketch, and says, when the head is done, "What! Has this figure no body?"
Nature remains calm, and accomplishes its work.
The ploughshare is not cruel when it tears the bosom of the earth, and the great
revolutions of the world are the husbandry of God.
There is a place for everything: to savage peoples, barbarous masters; to
cattle, butchers; to men, judges and fathers.
If time could change the sheep into lions, they would eat the butchers and the
shepherds.
Sheep never change because they do not instruct themselves; but peoples instruct
themselves.
Shepherds and butchers of the people, you are then {31} right to regard as your
enemies those who speak to your flock!
Flocks who know yet only your shepherds, and who wish to remain ignorant of
their dealings with the butchers, it is excusable that you should stone them who
humiliate you and disturb you, in speaking to you of your rights.
O Christ! The authorities condemn Thee, Thy disciples deny Thee, the people
curses Thee, and demands Thy murder; only Thy mother weeps for Thee, even God
abandons Thee!
"Eli! Eli! lama sabachthani!"
VII
THE SEPTENARY
THE Septenary is the great biblical number. It is the key of the Creation in the
books of Moses and the symbol of all religion. Moses left five books, and the
Law is complete in two testaments.
The Bible is not a history, it is a collection of poems, a book of allegories
and images.
Adam and Eve are only the primitive types of humanity; the tempter serpent is
time which tests; the Tree of Knowledge is 'right'; the expiation by toil is
duty.
Cain and Abel represent the flesh and the spirit, force and intelligence,
violence and harmony.
The giants are those who usurped the earth in ancient times; the flood was a
great revolution.
The ark is tradition preserved in a family: religion at this period becomes a
mystery and the property of the race. Ham was cursed for having revealed it.
{32}
Nimrod and Babel are the two primitive allegories of the despot, and of the
universal empire which has always filled the dreams of men, --- a dream whose
fulfilment was sought successively by the Assyrians, the Medes, the Persians,
Alexander, Rome, Napoleon, the successors of Peter the Great, and always
unfinished because of the dispersion of interests, symbolized by the confusion
of tongues.
The universal empire could not realize itself by force, but by intelligence and
love. Thus, to Nimrod, the man of savage 'right,' the Bible opposed Abraham, the
man of duty, who goes voluntarily into exile in order to seek liberty and strife
in a strange country, which he seizes by virtue of his "Idea."
He has a sterile wife, his thought, and a fertile slave, his force; but when
force has produced its fruit, thought becomes fertile; and the son of
intelligence drives into exile the child of force. The man of intelligence is
submitted to rude tests; he must confirm his conquests by sacrifices. God orders
him to immolate his son, that is to say, doubt ought to test dogma, and the
intellectual man should be ready to sacrifice everything on the altar of supreme
reason. Then God intervenes: universal reason yields to the efforts of labour,
and shows herself to science; the material side of dogma is alone immolated. .
This is the meaning of the ram caught by its horns in a thicket. The history of
Abraham is, then, a symbol in the ancient manner, and contains a lofty
revelation of the destinies of the human soul. Taken literally, it is an absurd
and revolting story. Did not St. Augustine take literally the Golden Ass of
Apuleius?
Poor great men! {33}
The history of Isaac is another legend. Rebecca is the type of the oriental
woman, laborious, hospitable, partial in her affections, shrewd and wily in her
manoeuvres. Jacob and Esau are again the two types of Cain and Abel; but here
Abel avenges himself: the emancipated intelligence triumphs by cunning. The
whole of the genius of the Jews is in the character of Jacob, the patient and
laborious supplanter who yields to the wrath of Esau, becomes rich, and buys his
brother's forgiveness. One must never forget that, when the ancients want to
philosophize, they tell a story.
The history or legend of Joseph contains, in germ, the whole genius of the
Gospel; and the Christ, misunderstood by His people, must often have wept in
reading over again that scene, where the Governor of Egypt throws himself on the
neck of Benjamin, with the great cry of "I am Joseph!"
Israel becomes the people of God, that is to say, the conservator of the idea,
and the depositaries of the word. This idea is that of human independence, and
of royalty, by means of work; but one hides it with care, like a precious seed.
A painful and indelible sign is imprinted on the initiates; every image of the
truth is forbidden, and the children of Jacob watch, sword in hand, around the
unity of the tabernacle. Hamor and Shechem wish to introduce themselves forcibly
into the holy family, and perish with their people after undergoing a feigned
initiation. In order to dominate the vulgar, it is already necessary that the
sanctuary should surround itself with sacrifices and with terror.
The servitude of the children of Jacob paves the way for their deliverance: for
they have an idea, and one does not enchain an idea; they have a religion, and
one does not {34} violate a religion; they are, in fine, a people, and one does
not enchain a real people. Persecution stirs up avengers; the idea incarnates
itself in a man; Moses springs up; Pharaoh falls; and the column of smoke and
flame, which goes before a freed people, advances majestically into the desert.
Christ is priest and king by intelligence and by love.
He has received the holy unction, the unction of genius, faith and virtue, which
is force.
He comes when the priesthood is worn out, when the old symbols have no more
virtue, when the beacon of intelligence is extinguished.
He comes to recall Israel to life, and if he cannot galvanize Israel, slain by
the Pharisees, into life, he will resurrect the world given over to the dead
worship of idols.
Christ is the right to do one's duty.
Man has the right to do his duty, and he has no other right.
O man! thou hast the right to resist even unto death any who prevents thee from
doing thy duty.
Mother! Thy child is drowning; a man prevents thee from helping him; thou
strikest this man, thou dost run to save thy son! ... Who, then, will dare to
condemn thee?
Christ came to oppose the right of duty to the duty of right.
'Right,' with the Jews, was the doctrine of the Pharisees. And, indeed, they
seemed to have acquired the privilege of dogmatizing; were they not the
legitimate heirs of the synagogue?
They had the right to condemn the Saviour, and the Saviour knew that His duty
was to resist them. {35}
Christ is the soul of protest.
But the protest of what? Of the flesh against the intelligence? No!
Of right against duty? No!
Of the physical against the moral? No! No!
Of imagination against universal reason? Of folly against wisdom? No, a thousand
times No, and once more No!
Christ is the reality, duty, which protests eternally against the ideality,
right.
He is the emancipation of the spirit which breaks the slavery of the flesh.
He is devotion in revolt against egoism.
He is the sublime modesty which replies to pride: "I will not obey thee!"
Christ is unmated; Christ is solitary; Christ is sad: Why?
Because woman has prostituted herself.
Because society is guilty of theft.
Because selfish joy is impious.
Christ is judged, condemned, and executed; and men adore Him!
This happened in a world perhaps as serious as our own.
Judges of the world in which we live, pay attention, and think of Him who will
judge your judgments!
But, before dying, the Saviour bequeathed to His children the immortal sign of
salvation, Communion.
Communion! Common union! the final word of the Saviour of the world!
"The Bread and the Wine shared among all," said He, "this is my flesh and my
blood." {36}
He gave His flesh to the executioners, His blood to the earth which drank it.
Why?
In order that all may partake of the bread of intelligence, and of the wine of
love.
O sign of the union of men! O Round Table of universal chivalry! O banquet of
fraternity and equality! When will you be better understood?
Martyrs of humanity, all ye who have given your life in order that all should
have the bread which nourishes and the wine which fortifies, do ye not also say,
placing your hands on the signs of the universal communion: "This is our flesh
and our blood"?
And you, men of the whole world, you whom the Master calls His brothers; oh, do
you not feel that the universal bread, the fraternal bread, the bread of the
communion, is God?
Retailers of the Crucified One!
All you who are not ready to give your blood, your flesh and your life to
humanity, you are not worthy of the Communion of the Son of God! Do not let His
blood flow upon you, for it would brand your forehead!
Do not approach your lips to the heart of God, He would feel your sting!
Do not drink the blood of the Christ, it will burn your entrails; it is quite
sufficient that it should have flowed uselessly for you!
VIII
THE NUMBER EIGHT
THE Ogdoad is the number of reaction and of equilibrating justice. {37}
Every action produces a reaction.
This is the universal law of the world.
Christianity must needs produce anti-Christianity.
Antichrist is the shadow, the foil, the proof of Christ.
Antichrist already produced itself in the Church in the time of the Apostles:
St. Paul said: --- "For the mystery of iniquity doth already work; only he who
now letteth will let, until he be taken out of the way. And then shall that
Wicked One be revealed. ..."<<2 Thess. ii. 7,8. This passage is presumably that
referred to by the author. Cf. 1 John iv. 3, and ii, 18. --- TRANS.>>
The Protestants said: "Antichrist is the Pope."
The Pope replied: "Every heretic is an Antichrist."
The Antichrist is no more the Pope than Luther; the Antichrist is the spirit
opposed to that of Christ.
It is the usurpation of right for the sake of right; it is the pride of
domination and the despotism of thought.
It is the selfishness, self-styled religious, of Protestants, as well as the
credulous and imperious ignorance of bad Catholics.
The Antichrist is what divides men instead of uniting them; it is a spirit of
dispute, the obstinacy of the theologians and sectarians, the impious desire of
appropriating the truth to oneself, and excluding others from it, or of forcing
the whole world to submit to the narrow yoke of our judgments.
The Antichrist is the priest who curses instead of blessing, who drives away
instead of attracting, who scandalizes instead of edifying, who damns instead of
saving.
It is the hateful fanaticism which discourages good-will.
It is the worship of death, sadness, and ugliness. {38}
"What career shall we choose for our son?" have said many stupid parents; "he is
mentally and bodily weak, and he is without a spark of courage: --- we will make
a priest of him, so that he may 'live by the altar.'" They have not understood
that the altar is not a manger for slothful animals.
Look at the unworthy priests, contemplate these pretended servants of the altar!
What do they say to your heart, these obese or cadaverous men with the lack-lustre
eyes, and pinched or gaping mouths?<<Actual priests. Levi's ideal priest, of
whom 'bad; is an impossible epithet, is not to be looked for in the Church. He
is in that 'Church' which is also Ark, Rose, Font, Altar, Cup, and the rest. He
is that Word of Truth which is 'established' by two witnesses. --- O. M.>>
Hear them talk: what does it teach you, their disagreeable and monotonous noise?
They pray as they sleep, and they sacrifice as they eat.
They are machines full of bread, meat and wine, and of senseless words.
And when they plume themselves, like the oyster in the sun, on being without
thought and without love, one says that they have peace of soul!
They have the peace of the brute. For man, that of the tomb is better: these are
the priests of folly and ignorance, these are the ministers of Antichrist.
The true priest of Christ is a man who lives, suffers, loves and fights for
justice. He does not dispute, he does not reprove; he sends out pardon,
intelligence and love.
The true Christian is a stranger to the sectarian spirit; he is all things to
all men, and looks on all men as the children of a common father, who means to
save them all. The whole cult has for him only a sense of sweetness and of {39}
love: he leaves to God the secrets of justice, and understands only charity.
He looks on the wicked as invalids whom one must pity and cure; the world, with
its errors and vices, is to him God's hospital, and he wishes to serve in it.
He does not think that he is better than any one else; he says only, "So long as
I am in good health, let me serve others; and when I must fall and die, perhaps
others will take my place and serve."
IX
THE NUMBER NINE
THIS is the hermit of the Tarot; the number which refers to initiates and to
prophets.
The prophets are solitaries, for it is their fate that none should ever hear
them.
They see differently from others; they forefeel misfortunes. So, people imprison
them and kill them, or mock them, repulse them as if they were lepers, and leave
them to die of hunger.
Then, when the predictions come true, they say, "It is these people who have
brought us misfortune."
Now, as is always the case on the eve of great disasters,<<This is the true
clairvoyant Levi. The Levi who prophesied Universal Empire for Napoleon III was
either the Magus trying to use him as a tool, or a Micaiah unadjured. --- O.
M.>> our streets are full of prophets.
I have met some of them in the prisons, I have seen others who were dying
forgotten in garrets.
The whole great city has seen one of them whose silent {40} prophecy was to turn
ceaselessly as he walked, covered with rags, in the palace of luxury and riches.
I have seen one of them whose face shone like that of Christ: he had callosities
on his hands, and wore the workman's blouse; with clay he kneaded epics. He
twisted together the sword of right and the sceptre of duty; and upon this
column of gold and steel he placed the creative sign of love.
One day, in a great popular assembly, he went down into the road with a piece of
bread in his hand which he broke and distributed, saying: "Bread of God, do thou
make bread for all!"
I know another of them who cried: "I will no longer adore the god of the devil!
I will not have a hangman for my God!" And they thought that he blasphemed.
No; but the energy of his faith overflowed in inexact and imprudent words.
He said again in the madness of his wounded charity: "The liabilities of all men
are common, and they expiate each other's faults, as they make merit for each
other by their virtues.
"The penalty of sin is death.
"Sin itself, moreover, is a penalty, and the greatest of penalties. A great
crime is nothing but a great misfortune.
"The worst of men is he who thinks himself better than his follows.
"Passionate men are excusable, because they are passive; passion means
suffering, and also redemption through sorrow.
"What we call liberty is nothing but the all-mightiness of divine compulsion.
The martyrs said: 'It is better to obey God than man'." {41}
"The least perfect act of love is worth more than the best act of piety."
"Judge not; speak hardly at all; love and act."
Another prophet came and said: "Protest against bad doctrines by good works, but
do not separate yourselves.
"Rebuild all the altars, purify all the temples, and hold yourselves in
readiness for the visit of the Spirit.
"Let every one pray in his own fashion, and hold communion with his own; but do
not condemn others.
"A religious practice is never contemptible, for it is the sign of a great and
holy thought.
"To pray together is to communicate in the same hope, the same faith,and the
same charity.
"The sign by itself is nothing; it is the faith which sanctifies it.
"Religion is the most sacred and the strongest bond of human association, and to
perform an act of religion is to perform an act of humanity."
When men understand at last that one must not dispute about things about which
one is ignorant,
When they feel that a little charity is worth more than much influence and
domination,
When the whole world respects what even God respects in the least of His
creatures, the spontaneity of obedience and the liberty of duty,
Then there will be no more than one religion in the world, the Christian and
universal religion, the true Catholic religion, which will no longer deny itself
by restrictions of place and of persons.
"Woman," said the Saviour to the woman of Samaria, {42} "Verily I say unto thee,
that the time cometh when men shall no longer worship God, either in Jerusalem,
or on this mountain; for God is a spirit,<<A mistranslation by monotheists. The
Greek is GR:pi-nu-epsilon-upsilon-mu-alpha omicron Theta-epsilon-omicron-sigma:
"Spirit is God." --- TRANS.>> and they that worship Him must worship Him in
spirit and in truth."
X
THE ABSOLUTE NUMBER OF THE QABALAH
THE key of the Sephiroth. (Vide "Dogme et rituel de la haute magie.")
XI
THE NUMBER ELEVEN
ELEVEN is the number of force; it is that of strife and martyrdom.
Every man who dies for an idea is a martyr, for in him the aspirations of the
spirit have triumphed over the fears of the animal.
Every man who falls in war is a martyr, for he dies for others.
Every man who dies of starvation is a martyr, for he is like a soldier struck
down in the battle of life.
Those who die in defence of right are as holy in their sacrifice as the victims
of duty, and in the great struggles and revolutions against power, martyrs fell
equally on both sides.
Right being the root of duty, our duty is to defend our rights.
What is a crime? The exaggeration of a right. Murder {43} and theft are
negations of society; it is the isolated despotism of an individual who usurps
royalty, and makes war at his own risk and peril.
Crime should doubtless be repressed, and society must defend itself; but who is
so just, so great, so pure, as to pretend that he has the right to punish?
Peace then to all who fall in war, even in unlawful war! For they have staked
their heads and they have lost them; they have paid, and what more can we ask of
them?
Honour to all those who fight bravely and loyally! Shame only on the traitors
and cowards!
Christ died between two thieves, and He took one of them with Him to heaven.
The Kingdom of Heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force.
God bestows His almighty power on love. He loves to triumph over hate, but the
lukewarm He spueth forth from His mouth.
Duty is to live, were it but for an instant!
It is fine to have reigned for a day, even for an hour! though it were beneath
the sword of Damocles, or upon the pyre of Sardanapalus!
But it is finer to have seen at one's feet all the crowns of the world, and to
have said, "I will be the king of the poor, and my throne shall be on Calvary."
There is one man stronger than the man that slays; it is he who dies to save
others.
There are no isolated crimes and no solitary expiations.
There are no personal virtues, nor are there any wasted devotions. {44}
Whoever is not without reproach is the accomplice of all evil; and whoever is
not absolutely perverse, may participate in all good.
For this reason an agony is always an humanitarian expiation, and every head
that falls upon the scaffold may be honoured and praised as the head of a
martyr.
For this reason also, the noblest and the holiest of martyrs could inquire of
his own conscience, find himself deserving of the penalty that he was about to
undergo, and say, saluting the sword that was ready to strike him, "Let justice
be done!"
Pure victims of the Roman Catacombs, Jews and Protestants massacred by unworthy
Christians!
Priests of l'Abbaye and les Carmes,<<Monasteries in Paris which were used as
prisons in the Reign of Terror. --- TRANS.>> victims of the Reign of Terror,
butchered royalists, revolutionaries sacrificed in your turn, soldiers of our
great armies who have sown the world with your bones, all you who have suffered
the penalty of death, workers, strivers, darers of every kind, brave children of
Prometheus, who have feared neither the lightning nor the vulture, all honour to
your scattered ashes! Peace and veneration to your memories! You are the heroes
of progress, martyrs of humanity!
XII
THE NUMBER TWELVE
TWELVE is the cyclic number; it is that of the universal Creed. {45}
Here is a translation in alexandrines of the unrestricted magical and Catholic
creed: ---
I do believe in God, almighty sire of man.
One God, who did create the universe, his plan.
I do believe in Him, the Son, the chief of men,
Word and magnificence of the supreme Amen.
He is the living thought of Love's eternal might,
God manifest in flesh, the Action of the Light.
Desired in every place and every period,
But not a God that one may separate from God.
Descended among men to free the earth from fate,
He in His mother did the woman consecrate.
He was the man whom heaven's sweet wisdom did adorn;
To suffer and to die as men do He was born.
Proscribed by ignorance, accused by envy and strife,
He died upon the cross that He might give us life.
All who accept His aid to guide and to sustain
By His example may to God like Him attain.
He rose from death to reign throughout the ages' dance;
He is the sun that melts the clouds of ignorance.
His precepts, better known and mightier soon to be,
Shall judge the quick and dead for all eternity.
I do believe in God's most Holy Spirit, whose fire
The heart and mind of saints and prophets did inspire.
He is a Breath of life and of fecundity,
Proceeding both from God and from humanity.
I do believe in one most holy brotherhood
Of just men that revere heaven's ordinance of good.
I do believe one place, one pontiff, and one right,
One symbol of one God, in one intent unite.
I do believe that death by changing us renews,
And that in man as God life sheds immortal dews.
XIII
THE NUMBER THIRTEEN
THIRTEEN is the number of death and of birth; it is that of property and of
inheritance, of society and of family, of war and of treaties. {46}
The basis of society is the exchange of right, duty and good faith.
Right is property, exchange is necessity, good faith is duty.
He who wants to receive more than he gives, or who wants to receive without
giving, is a thief.
Property is the right to dispose of a portion of the common wealth; it is not
the right to destroy, nor the right to sequestrate.
To destroy or sequestrate the common wealth is not to possess; it is to steal.
I say common wealth, because the true proprietor of all things is God, who
wishes all things to belong to everybody. Whatever you may do, at your death you
will carry away nothing of this world's goods. Now, that which must be taken
away from you one day is not really yours. It has only been lent to you.
As to the usufruct, it is the result of work; but even work is not an assured
guarantee of possession, and war may come with devastation and fire to displace
property.
Make then good use of those things which perish, O you who will perish before
they do!
Consider that egoism provokes egoism, and that the immorality of the rich man
will answer for the crimes of the poor.
What does the poor man wish, if he is honest? He wishes for work.
Use your rights, but do your duty: the duty of the rich man is to spread wealth;
wealth which does not circulate is dead; do not hoard death!
A sophist<<Proudhon. --- TRANS.>> has said, "Property is robbery," and he {47}
doubtless wished to speak of property absorbed in itself, withdrawn from free
exchange, turned from common use.
If such were his thought, he might go further, and say that such a suppression
of public life is indeed assassination.
It is the crime of monopoly, which public instinct has always looked upon as
treason to the human race.
The family is a natural society which results from marriage.
Marriage is the union of two beings joined by love, who promise each other
mutual devotion in the interest of the children who may be born.
Married persons who have a child, and who separate, are impious. Do they then
wish to execute the judgment of Solomon and hew the child asunder?
To vow eternal love is puerile; sexual love is an emotion, divine doubtless, but
accidental, involuntary and transitory; but the promise of reciprocal devotion
is the essence of marriage and the fundamental principle of the family.
The sanction and the guarantee of this promise must then be an absolute
confidence.
Every jealousy is a suspicion, and every suspicion is an outrage.
The real adultery is the breach of this trust: the woman who complains of her
husband to another man; the man who confides to another woman the
disappointments or the hopes of his heart, --- these do, indeed, betray conjugal
faith.
The surprises which one's senses spring upon one are only infidelities on
account of the impulses of the heart which abandons itself more or less to the
whispers of pleasure. Moreover, these are human faults for which one must blush,
{48} and which one ought to hide: they are indecencies which one must avoid in
advance by removing opportunity, but which one must never seek to surprise:
morality proscribes scandal.
Every scandal is a turpitude. One is not indecent because one possesses organs
which modesty does not name, but one is obscene when one exhibits them.
Husbands, hide your domestic wounds; do not strip your wives naked before the
laughter of the mob!
Women, do not advertise the discomforts of the conjugal bed: to do so is to
write yourselves prostitutes in public opinion.
It needs a lofty degree of courage to keep conjugal faith; it is a pact of
heroism of which only great souls can understand the whole extent.
Marriages which break are not marriages: they are couplings.
A woman who abandons her husband, what can she become? She is no more a wife,
and she is not a widow; what is she then? She is an apostate from honour who is
forced to be licentious because she is neither virgin nor free.
A husband who abandons his wife prostitutes her, and deserves the infamous name
that one applies to the lovers of lost women.
Marriage is then sacred and indissoluble when it really exists.
But it cannot really exist, except for beings of a lofty intelligence and of a
noble heart.
The animals do not marry, and men who live like animals undergo the fatalities
of the brute nature.
They ceaselessly make unfortunate attempts to act {49} reasonably. Their
promises are attempts at and imitations of promises; their marriages, attempts
at and imitations of marriage; their loves, attempts at and imitations of love.
They always wish, and never will; they are always undertaking and never
completing. For such people, only the repressive side of law applies.
Such beings may have a litter, but they never have a family: marriage and family
are the rights of the perfect man, the emancipated man, the man who is
intelligent and free.
Ask also the annals of the Courts, and read the history of parricides.
Raise the black veil from off all those chopped heads, and ask them what they
thought of marriage and of the family, what milk they sucked, what caresses
ennobled them. ... Then shudder, all you who do not give to your children the
bread of intelligence and of love, all you who do not sanction paternal
authority by the virtue of a good example!
Those wretches were orphans in spirit and in heart, and they have avenged their
birth.
We live in a century when more than ever the family is misunderstood in all that
it possesses which partakes of the august and the sacred: material interest is
killing intelligence and love; the lessons of experience are despised, the
things of God are hawked about the street. The flesh insults the spirit, fraud
laughs in the face of loyalty. No more idealism, no more justice: human life has
murdered both its father and its mother.
Courage and patience! This century will go where great criminals should go. Look
at it, how sad it is! Weariness {50} is the black veil of its face ... the
tumbril rolls on, and the shuddering crown follows it. ..
Soon one more century will be judged by history, and one will write upon a
mighty tomb of ruins:
"Here ends the parricide century! The century which murdered its God and its
Christ!"
In war, one has the right to kill, in order not to die: but in the battle of
life the most sublime of rights is that of dying in order not to kill.
Intelligence and love should resist oppression unto death --- but never unto
murder.
Brave man, the life of him who has offended you is in your hands; for he is
master of the life of others who cares not for his own... Crush him beneath your
greatness: pardon him!
"But is it forbidden to kill the tiger which threatens us?"
"If it is a tiger with a human face, it is finer to let him devour us, --- yet,
for all that, morality has here nothing to say."
"But if the tiger threatens my children?"
"Let Nature herself reply to you!"
Harmodius and Aristogiton had festivals and statues in Ancient Greece. The Bible
has consecrated the names of Judith and Ehud, and one of the most sublime
figures of the Holy Book is that of Samson, blind and chained, pulling down the
columns of the temple, as he cried: "Let me die with the Philistines!"
And yet, do you think that, if Jesus, before dying, had gone to Rome to plunge
his dagger in the heart of Tiberius, He would have saved the world, as He did,
in forgiving His executioners, and in dying for even Tiberius? {51}
Did Brutus save Roman liberty by killing Caesar? In killing Caligula, Chaerea
only made place for Claudius and Nero. To protest against violence by violence,
is to justify it, and to force it to reproduce itself.
But to triumph over evil by good, over selfishness by selfabnegation, over
ferocity by pardon, that is the secret of Christianity, and it is that of
eternal victory.
"I have seen the place where the earth still bled from the murder of "Abel," and
on that place there ran a brook of tears.
Under the guidance of the centuries, myriads of men moved on, letting fall their
tears into the brook.
And Eternity, crouching mournful, gazed upon the tears which fell; she counted
them one by one, and there were never enough to them to wash away one stain of
blood.
But between two multitudes and two ages came the Christ, a pale and radiant
figure.
And in the earth of blood and tears, He planted the vine of fraternity; and the
tears and the blood, sucked up by the roots of the divine tree, became the
delicious sap of the grape, which is destined to intoxicate with love the
children of the future.
XIV
THE NUMBER FOURTEEN
FOURTEEN is the number of fusion, of association, and of universal unity, and it
is in the name of what it represents that we shall here make an appeal to the
nations, beginning with the most ancient and the most holy.
Children of Israel, why, in the midst of the movement of {52} the nations, do
you rest immobile, guardians of the tombs of your fathers?
Your fathers are not here, they are risen: for the God of Abraham, of Isaac, and
of Jacob, is not the God of the dead!
Why do you always impress upon your offspring the bloody sigil of the knife?
God no longer wishes to separate you from other men; be our brethren, and eat
with us the consecrated Bread of peace on altars that blood stains never.
The law of Moses is accomplished: read your books and understand that you have
been a blind and hard-hearted race, even as all your prophets said to you.
You have also been a courageous race, a race that persevered in strife.
Children of Israel, become the children of God: Understand and love!
God has wiped from your forehead the brand of Cain, and the peoples seeing you
pass will no longer say, "There go the Jews!" They will cry, "Room for our
brethren! Room for our elders in the Faith!"
And we shall go every year to eat the passover with you in the city of the New
Jerusalem.
And we shall take our rest under your vine and under your fig-tree; for you will
be once more the friend of the traveller, in memory of Abraham, of Tobias, and
of the angels who visited them.
And in memory of Him who said: "He who receiveth the least of these My little
ones, receiveth Me."
For then you will no longer refuse an asylum in your {53} house and in your
heart to your brother Joseph, whom you sold to the Gentiles.
Because he has become powerful in the land of Egypt where you sought bread in
the days of famine.
And he has remembered his father Jacob, and Benjamin his young brother, and he
pardons you your jealousy, and embraces you with tears.
Children of true believers, we will sing with you: "There is no God but God, and
Mohammed is His prophet!"
Say with the children of Israel: "There is no God but God, and Moses is His
prophet!"
Say with the Christians: "There is no God but God, and Jesus Christ is His
prophet!"
Mohammed is the shadow of Moses. Moses is the forerunner of Jesus.
What is a prophet? A representative of humanity seeking God. God is God, and man
is the prophet of God, when he causes us to believe in God.
The Old Testament, the Qur'an, and the Gospel are three different translations
of the same book. As God is one, so also is the law.
O ideal woman! O reward of the elect! Art thou more beautiful than Mary?
O Mary, daughter of the East! caste as pure love, great as the desire of
motherhood, come and teach the children of Islam the mysteries of Paradise, and
the secrets of beauty!
Invite them to the festival of the new alliance! There, upon three thrones
glittering with precious stones, three prophets will be seated. {54}
The tuba tree will make, with its back-curving branches, a dais for the
celestial table.
The bride will be white as the moon, and scarlet as the smile of morning.
All nations shall press forward to see her, and they will no longer fear to pass
AL Sirah; for, on that razor-edged bridge, the Saviour will stretch His cross,
and come to stretch His hand to those who stumble, and to those who have fallen
the bride will stretch her perfumed veil, and draw them to her.
O ye people, clap your hands, and praise the last triumph of love! Death alone
will remain dead, and hell alone will be consumed!
O nations of Europe, to whom the East stretches forth its hands, unite and push
back the northern bear!<<Written about the time of the Crimean War, this
indicates Levi's attempt to use Imperialism as his magical weapon, just as Allan
Bennett tried to use Buddhism. All these second-hand swords break, as Wagner saw
when he wrote "Siegfried," and invented a new Music, a Nothung which has shorn
asunder more false sceptres than Wotan's. --- O. M.>> Let the last war bring the
triumph of intelligence and love, let commerce interlace the arms of the world,
and a new civilization, sprung from the armed Gospel, unite all the flocks of
the earth under the crook of the same shepherd!
Such will be the conquests of progress, such is the end towards which the whole
movement of the world is pushing us.
Progress is movement, and movement is life.
To deny progress is to affirm nothingness, and to deify death.
Progress is the only reply that reason can give to the objections which the
existence of evil raises. {55}
All is not well, but all will be well one day. God begins His work, and He will
finish it.
Without progress, evil would be immutable like God.
Progress explains ruins, and consoles the weeping of Jeremiah.
Nations succeed each other like men; and nothing is stable, because everything
is marching towards perfection.
The great man who dies bequeathes to his country the fruit of his works; the
great nation which becomes extinguished upon earth transforms itself into a star
to enlighten the obscurities of History.
What it has written by its actions remains graven in the eternal book; it has
added a page to the Bible of the human race.
Do not say that civilization is bad; for it resembles the damp heat which ripens
the harvest, it rapidly develops the principles of life and the principles of
death, it kills and it vivifies.
It is like the angel of the judgment who separates the wicked from the good.
Civilization transforms men of good will into angels of light, and lowers the
selfish man beneath the brute; it is the corruption of bodies and the
emancipation of souls.
The impious world of the giants raised to Heaven the soul of Enoch; above the
Bacchanals of primitive Greece rises the harmonious spirit of Orpheus.
Socrates and Pythagoras, Plato and Aristotle, resume, in explaining them, all
the aspirations and all the glories of the ancient world; the fables of Homer
remain truer than history, and nothing remains to us of the grandeur of Rome
{56} but the immortal writings which the century of Augustus brought forth.
Thus, perhaps, Rome only shook the world with the convulsions of war, in order
to bring forth Vergil.
Christianity is the fruit of the meditations of all the sages of the East, who
live again in Jesus Christ.
Thus the light of the spirits has risen where the sun of the world rises; Christ
conquered the West, and the soft rays of the sun of Asia have touched the
icicles of the North.
Stirred by this unknown heat, ant-heaps of new men have spread over a worn-out
world; the souls of dead people have shone upon rejuvenated races, and enlarged
in them the spirit of life.
There is in the world a nation which calls itself frankness and freedom, for
these two words are synonymous with the name of France.
This nation has always been in some ways more Catholic than the Pope, and more
Protestant than Luther.
The France of the Crusades, the France of the Troubadours, the France of songs,
the France of Rabelais and of Voltaire, the France of Bossuet and of Pascal, it
is she who is the synthesis of all peoples: it is she who consecrates the
alliance of reason and of faith, of revolution and of power, of the most tender
belief and of the proudest human dignity.
And, see how she marches, how she swings herself, how she struggles, how she
grows great!
Often deceived and wounded, never cast down, enthusiastic over her triumphs,
daring in her adversities, she laughs, she sings, she dies, and she teaches the
world faith in immortality. {57}
The old guard does not surrender, but neither does it die! The proof of it is
the enthusiasm of our children, who mean, one day, to be also soldiers of the
old guard!
Napoleon is no more a man: he is the very genius of France, he is the second
saviour of the world, and he also gave for a sign the cross to his apostles.
St. Helena and Golgotha are the beacons of the new civilization; they are the
two piles of an immerse bridge made by the rainbow of the final deluge, and
which throws a bridge between the two worlds.
And can you believe that a past without aureole and without glory, might capture
and devour so great a future?
Could you think that the spur of a Tartar might one day tear up the pact of our
glories, the testament of our liberties?
Say rather that we may again become children, and enter again into our mother's
womb!
"Go on! Go on!" said the voice of God to the wandering Jew. "Advance! Advance!"
the destiny of the world cries out to France. And where do we go? To the
unknown, the the abyss perhaps; no matter! But to the past, to the cemeteries of
oblivion, to the swaddling-clothes which our childhood itself tore in shreds,
towards the imbecility and ignorance of the earliest ages ... never! never!
XV
THE NUMBER FIFTEEN
FIFTEEN is the number of antagonism, and of catholicity.
Christianity is at present divided into two churches: the {58} civilizing
church, and the savage church; the progressive church, and the stationary
church.
One is active, the other is passive: one has mastered the nations and governs
them always, since kings fear it; the other has submitted to every despotism,
and can be nothing but an instrument of slavery.
The active church realizes God for men, and alone believes in the divinity of
the human Word, as an interpreter of that of God.
What after all is the infallibility of the Pope, but the autocracy of
intelligence, confirmed by the universal vote of faith?
In this case, one might say, the Pope ought to be the first genius of his
century. Why? It is more proper, in reality, that he should be an average man.
His supremacy is only more divine for that, because it is in a way more human.
Do not events speak louder than rancours and irreligious ignorances? Do not you
see Catholic France sustaining with one hand the tottering papacy, and with the
other holding the sword to fight at the head of the army of progress?
Catholics, Jews, Turks, Protestants, already fight under the same banner; the
crescent has rallied to the Latin cross, and altogether we struggle against the
invasion of the barbarians, and their brutalizing orthodoxy.
It is for ever an accomplished fact. In admitting new dogmas, the chair of St.
Peter has solemnly proclaimed itself progressive.
The fatherland of Catholic Christianity is that of the sciences and of the fine
arts; and the eternal Word of the Gospel, living and incarnate in a visible
authority, is still the light of the world. {59}
Silence, then, to the Pharisees of the new synagogue! Silence to the hateful
traditions of the Schools, to the arrogance of Presbyterianism, to the absurdity
of Jansenism, and to all those shameful and superstitious interpretations of the
eternal dogma, so justly stigmatized by the pitiless genius of Voltaire!
Voltaire and Napoleon died Catholics.<<"I do not say that Voltaire died a good
Catholic, but he died a Catholic." --- E. L. Christian authors unanimously hold
that, like all 'heretics,' he repented on his death-bed, and died blaspheming.
What on earth does it matter? Life, not death, reveals the soul. --- TRANS.>>
And do you know what the Catholicism of the future must be?
It will be the dogma of the Gospel, tried like gold by the critical acid of
Voltaire, and realized, in the kingdom of the world, by the genius of the
Christian Napoleon.
Those who will not march will be dragged or trampled by events.
Immense calamities may again hang over the world. The armies of the Apocalypse
may, perhaps, one day, unchain the four scourges. The sanctuary will be
cleansed. Rigid and holy poverty will send forth its apostles to uphold what
staggers, lift up again what is broken, and anoint all wounds with sacred oils.
Those two blood-hungered monsters, despotism and anarchy, will tear themselves
to pieces, and annihilate each other, after having mutually sustained each other
for a little while, by the embrace of their struggle itself.
And the government of the future will be that whose model is shown to us in
nature, by the family, and in the religious world by the pastoral hierarchy. The
elect shall reign with Jesus Christ during a thousand years, say the {60}
apostolic traditions: that is to say, that during a series of centuries, the
intelligence and love of chosen men, devoted to the burden of power, will
administer the interests and the wealth of the universal family.
At that day, according to the promise of the Gospel, there will be no more than
one flock and one shepherd.
XVI
THE NUMBER SIXTEEN
SIXTEEN is the number of the temple.
Let us say what the temple of the future will be!
When the spirit of intelligence and love shall have revealed itself, the whole
trinity will manifest itself in its truth and in its glory.
Humanity, become a queen, and, as it were, risen from the dead, will have the
grace of childhood in its poesy, the vigour of youth in its reason, and the
wisdom of ripe age in its works.
All those forms, which the divine thought has successively clothed, will be born
again, immortal and perfect.
All those features which the art of successive nations has sketched will unite
themselves, and form the complete image of God.
Jerusalem will rebuild the Temple of Jehovah on the model prophesied by Ezekiel;
and the Christ, new and eternal Solomon, will chant, beneath roofs of cedar and
of cypress, the Epithalamium of his marriage with holy liberty, the holy bride
of the Song of Songs.
But Jehovah will have laid aside his thunderbolts, to bless {61} with both hands
the bridegroom and the bride; he will appear smiling between them, and take
pleasure in being called father.
However, the poetry of the East, in its magical souvenirs, will call him still
Brahma, and Jupiter. India will teach our enchanted climates the marvellous
fables of Vishnu, and we shall place upon the still bleeding forehead of our
well-beloved Christ the triple crown of pearls of the mystical Trimurti. From
that time, Venus, purified under the veil of Mary, will no more weep for her
Adonis.
The bridegroom is risen to die no more, and the infernal boar has found death in
its momentary victory.
Lift yourselves up again, O Temples of Delphi and of Ephesus! The God of Light
and of Art is become the God of the world, and the Word of God is indeed willing
to be called Apollo! Diana will no more reign widowed in the lonely fields of
night; her silvern crescent is now beneath the feet of the bride.
But Diana is not conquered by Venus; her Endymion has wakened, and virginity is
about to take pride in motherhood!
Quit the tomb, O Phidias, and rejoice in the destruction of thy first Jupiter:
it is now that thou wilt conceive a God!
O Rome, let thy temples rise again, side by side with thy basilicas: be once
more the Queen of the World, and the Pantheon of the nations; let Vergil be
crowned on the Capitol by the hand of St. Peter; and let Olympus and Carmel
unite their divinities beneath the brush of Raphael!
Transfigure yourselves, ancient cathedrals of our fathers; dart forth into the
clouds your chiselled and living arrows, and {62} let stone record in animated
figures the dark legends of the North, brightened by the marvellous gilded
apologues of the Qur'an!
Let the East adore Jesus Christ in its mosques, and on the minarets of a new
Santa Sophia let the cross rise in the midst of the crescent!<<It is amusing to
remark that this very symbol is characteristic of the Greek Church which he has
been attacking. Levi should have visited Moscow. --- TRANS.>>
Let Mohammed set woman free to give to the true believer the houris which he has
so long dreamt of, and let the martyrs of the Saviour teach chaste caresses to
the beautiful angels of Mohammed!
The whole earth, reclothed with the rich adornments which all the arts have
embroidered for her, will no longer be anything but a magnificent temple, of
which man shall be the eternal priest.
All that was true, all that was beautiful, all that was sweet in the past
centuries, will live once more glorified in this transfiguration of the world.
And the beautiful form will remain inseparable from the true idea, as the body
will one day be inseparable from the soul, when the soul, come to its own power,
will have made itself a body in its own image.
That will be the kingdom of Heaven upon Earth, and the body will be the temple
of the soul, as the regenerated universe will be the body of God.
And bodies and souls, and form and thought, and the whole universe, will be the
light, the word, and the permanent and visible revelation of God. Amen. So be
it. {63}
XVII
THE NUMBER SEVENTEEN
SEVENTEEN is the number of the star; it is that of intelligence and love.
Warrior and bold intelligence, accomplice of divine Prometheus, eldest daughter
of Lucifer, hail unto thee in thine audacity! Thou didst wish to know, and in
order to possess, thou didst brave all the thunders, and affronted every abyss!
Intelligence, O Thou, whom we poor sinners have loved to madness, to scandal, to
reprobation! Divine right of man, essence and soul of liberty, hail unto thee!
For they have pursued thee, in trampling beneath their feet for thee the dearest
dreams of their imagination, the best beloved phantoms of their heart!
For thee, they have been repulsed and proscribed, for thee they have suffered
prison, nakedness, hunger, thirst, the desertion of those whom they loved, and
the dark temptations of despair! Thou wast their right, and they have conquered
thee! Now they can weep and believe, now they can submit themselves and pray!
Repentant Cain would have been greater than Abel: it is lawful pride satisfied
which has the right to humiliate itself!
I believe because I know why and how one must believe; I believe because I love,
and fear no more.
Love! Love! Sublime redeemer and sublime restorer; thou who makest so much
happiness, with so many tortures, thou who didst sacrifice blood and tears, thou
who art virtue {64} itself, and the reward of virtue; force of resignation,
belief of obedience, joy of sorrow, life of death, hail! Salutation and glory to
thee! If intelligence is a lamp, thou art its flame; if it is right, thou art
duty; if it is nobility, thou art happiness. Love, full of pride and modesty in
thy mysteries, divine love, hidden love, love insensate and sublime, Titan who
takest Heaven in both hands, and forcest it to earth, final and ineffable secret
of Christian widowhood, love eternal, love infinite, ideal which would suffice
to create worlds; love! love! blessing and glory to thee! Glory to the
intelligences which veil themselves that they may not offend weak eyes! Glory to
right which transforms itself wholly into duty, and which becomes devotion! To
the widowed souls who love, and burn up without being loved! To those who
suffer, and make none other suffer, to those who forgive the ungrateful, to
those who love their enemies! Oh, happy evermore, happy beyond all, are those
who embrace poverty, who have drained themselves to the dregs, to give! Happy
are the souls who for ever make thy peace! Happy the pure and the simple hearts
that never think themselves better than others! Humanity, my mother, humanity
daughter and mother of God, humanity conceived without sin, universal Church,
Mary! Happy is he who has dared all to know thee and to understand thee, and who
is ready to suffer all once more, in order to serve thee and to love thee!
XVIII
THE NUMBER EIGHTEEN
THIS number is that of religious dogma, which is all poetry and all mystery.
{65}
The Gospel says that at the death of the Saviour the veil of the Temple was
rent, because that death manifested the triumph of devotion, the miracle of
charity, the power of God in man, divine humanity, and human divinity, the
highest and most sublime of Arcana, the last word of all initiations.
But the Saviour knew that at first men would not understand him, and he said:
"You will not be able to bear at present the full light of my doctrine; but,
when the Spirit of Truth shall manifest himself, he will teach you all truth,
and he will cause you to understand the sense of what I have said unto you."
Now the Spirit of Truth is the spirit of science and intelligence, the spirit of
force and of counsel.
It is that spirit which solemnly manifested itself in the Roman Church, when it
declared in the four articles of its decree of the 12th December, 1845:
1 Degree. --- That if faith is superior to reason, reason ought to endorse the
inspirations of faith;
2 Degree. --- That faith and science have each their separate domain, and that
the one should not usurp the functions of the other;
3 Degree. --- That it is proper for faith and grace, not to weaken, but on the
contrary to strengthen and develop reason;
4 Degree. --- That the concourse of reason, which examines, not the decisions of
faith, but the natural and rational bases of the authority which decides them,
far from injuring faith, can only be useful to it; in other words, that a faith,
perfectly reasonable in its principles, should not fear, but should, on the
contrary, desire the sincere examination of reason.
Such a decree is the accomplishment of a complete religious {66} revolution, it
is the inauguration of the reign of the Holy Ghost upon the earth.
XIX
THE NUMBER NINETEEN
IT is the number of light.
It is the existence of God proved by the very idea of God.
Either one must say that Being is the universal tomb where, by an automatic
movement, stirs a form for ever dead and corpse-like, or one must admit the
absolute principle of intelligence and of life.
Is the universal light dead or alive? Is it vowed fatally to the work of
destruction, or providentially directed to an immortal birth?
If there be no God, intelligence is only a deception, for it fails to be the
absolute, and its ideal is a lie.
Without God, being is a nothingness affirming itself, life a death in disguise,
and light a night for ever deceived by the mirage of dreams.
The first and most essential act of faith is then this.
Being exists; and the Being of beings, the Truth of being, is God.
Being is alive with intelligence, and the living intelligence of absolute being
is God.
Light is real and life-giving; now, the reality and life of all light is God.
The word of universal reason is an affirmation and not a negation.
How blind are they who do not see that physical light is nothing but the
instrument of thought! {67}
Thought alone, then, reveals light, and creates it in using it for its own
purposes.
The affirmation of atheism is the dogma of eternal night: the affirmation of God
is the dogma of light!
We stop here at the number Nineteen, although the sacred alphabet has twenty-two
letters; but the first nineteen are the keys of occult theology. The others are
the keys of Nature; we shall return to them in the third part of this work.
-----------------------------
Let us resume what we have said concerning God, by quoting a fine invocation
borrowed from the Jewish liturgy. It is a page from the qabalistic poem
Kether-Malkuth, by Rabbi Solomon, son of Gabirol:
"Thou art one, the beginning of all numbers, and the foundation of all
buildings; thou art one, and in the secret of thy unity the most wise of men are
lost, because they know it not. Thou art one, and thy unity neither wanes nor
waxes, neither suffers any change. Thou art one, and yet not the one of the
mathematician, for thy unity admits neither multiplication, nor change, nor
form. Thou art one, and not one of mine imaginations can fix a limit for thee,
or give a definition of thee; therefore will I take heed to my ways, lest I
offend with my tongue. Thou art one indeed, whose excellence is so lofty, that
it may in no wise fall, by no means like that one which may cease to be.
"Thou art the existing one; nevertheless, the understanding and the sight of
mortals cannot attain thine existence, nor place in thee the where, the how, the
why. Thou art the {68} existing one, but in thyself, since no other can exist
beside thee. Thou art the existing one, before time, and beyond space. Thou art
indeed the existing one, and thine existence is so hidden, and so deep, that
none can discover it, or penetrate its secret.
"Thou art the living one, but not in fixed and known time; thou art the living
one, but not by spirit or by soul; for thou art the Soul of all souls. Thou art
the living one; but not living with the life of mortals, that is, like a breath,
and whose end is to give food to worms. Thou art the living one, and he that can
attain thy mysteries will enjoy eternal delight and live for ever.
"Thou art great; before thy greatness all other greatness bows, and all that is
most excellent becomes imperfect. Thou art great above all imagination, and thou
art exalted above all the hierarchies of Heaven. Thou art great above all
greatness, and thou art exalted above all praise. Thou art strong, and not one
among thy creatures can do the works that thou dost, nor can his force be
compared with thine. Thou art strong, and it is to thee that belongs that
strength invincible which changes not and decays never. Thou art strong; by thy
loving-kindness thou dost forgive in the moment of thy most burning wrath, and
thou showest thyself long-suffering to sinners. Thou art strong, and thy
mercies, existing from all time, are upon all thy creatures. Thou art the
eternal light, that pure souls shall see, and that the cloud of sins will hide
from the eyes of sinners. Thou art the light which is hidden in this world, and
visible in the other, where the glory of the Lord is shown forth. Thou art
Sovereign, and the eyes of understanding which desire to see thee are all {69}
amazed, for they can attain but part of it, never the whole. Thou art the God of
gods, and all thy creatures bear witness to it; and in honour of this great name
they owe thee all their worship. Thou art God, and all created beings are thy
servants and thy worshippers: thy glory is not tarnished, although men worship
other gods, because their intention is to address themselves to thee; they are
like blind men, who wish to follow the straight road, but stray; one falls into
a well, the other into a ditch; all think that they are come to their desire,
yet they have wearied themselves in vain. But thy servants are like men of clear
sight travelling upon the highroad; never do they stray from it, either to the
right hand or the left, until they are entered into the court of the king's
palace. Thou art God, who by thy godhead sustainest all beings, and by thy unity
dost being home all creatures. Thou art God, and there is no difference between
thy deity, thy unity, thy eternity, and thy existence; for all is one and the
same mystery; although names vary, all returns to the same truth. Thou art the
knower, and that intelligence which is the source of life emanates from thyself;
and beside thy knowledge all the wisest men are fools. Thou art the knower, and
the ancient of the ancient ones, and knowledge has ever fed from thee. Thou art
the knower, and thou hast learned thy knowledge from none, nor hast acquired it
but from thyself. Thou art the knower, and like a workman and an architect thou
hast taken from thy knowledge a divine will, at an appointed time, to draw being
from nothing; so that the light which falls from the eyes is drawn from its own
centre without any instrument or tool. This divine will has hollowed, designed,
purified and moulded; it has ordered {70} Nothingness to open itself, Being to
shut up, and the world to spread itself. It has spanned the heavens, and
assembled with its power the tabernacle of the spheres, with the cords of its
might it has bound the curtains of the creatures of the universe, and touching
with its strength the edge of the curtain of creation, has joined that which is
above to that which was below." --- ("Prayers of Kippour.")
We have given to these bold qabalistic speculations the only form which suits
them, that is, poesy, or the inspiration of the heart.
Believing souls will have no need of the rational hypotheses contained in this
new explanation of the figures of the Bible; but those sincere hearts afflicted
by doubt, which are tortured by eighteenth-century criticism, will understand in
reading it that even reason without faith can find in the Holy Book something
besides stumbling-blocks; if the veils with which the divine text is covered
throw a great shadow, this shadow is so marvellously designed by the interplay
of light that it becomes the sole intelligible image of the divine ideal.
Ideal, incomprehensible as infinity, and indispensable as the very essence of
mystery!
{71}
ARTICLE II
SOLUTION OF THE SECOND PROBLEM
TRUE RELIGION
RELIGION exists in humanity, like love.
Like it, it is unique.
Like it, it either exists, or does not exist, in such and such a soul; but,
whether one accepts it or denies it, it is in humanity; it is, then, in life, it
is in nature itself; it is an incontestable fact of science, and even of reason.
The true religion is that which has always existed, which exists to-day, and
will exist for ever.
Some one may say that religion is this or that; religion is what it is. This is
the true religion, and the false religions are superstitions imitated from her,
borrowed from her, lying shadows of herself!
One may say of religion what one says of true art. Savage attempts at painting
or sculpture are the attempts of ignorance to arrive at the truth. Art proves
itself by itself, is radiant with its own splendour, is unique and eternal like
beauty.
The true religion is beautiful, and it is by that divine character that it
imposes itself on the respect of science, and obtains the assent of reason.
Science dare not affirm or deny those dogmatic hypotheses which are truths for
faith; but it must recognize by unmistakable {72} characters the one true
religion, that is to say, that which alone merits the name of religion in that
it unites all the characters which agree with that great and universal
aspiration of the human soul.
One only thing, which is to all most evidently divine, is manifested in the
world.
It is charity.
The work of true religion should be to produce, to preserve, and to spread
abroad the spirit of charity.
To arrive at this end she must herself possess all the characteristics of
charity, in such a manner that one could define her satisfactorily, in naming
her, "Organic Charity."
Now, what are the characteristics of charity?
It is St. Paul who will tell us.
Charity is patient.
Patient like God, because it is eternal as He is. It suffers persecutions, and
never persecutes others.
It is kindly and loving, calling to itself the little, and not repulsing the
great.
It is without jealousy. Of whom, and of what, should it be jealous? Has it not
that better part which shall not be taken away from it?
It is neither quarrelsome nor intriguing.
It is without pride, without ambition, without selfishness, without anger.
It never thinks evil, and never triumphs by injustice; for all its joy is
comprehended in truth.
It endures everything, without ever tolerating evil.
It believes all; its faith is simple, submissive, hierarchical, and universal.
{73}
It sustains all, and never imposes burdens which it is not itself the first to
carry.
{Illustration on page 74 described:
This is titled below: "GREAT PENTACLE FROM THE VISION OF ST. JOHN"
The figure is contained within a rectangle of width a bit less than half height.
The figure itself is taken from Revelations Chapter 10 and is roughly divisible
into four parts. The top contains a human head and upraised left hand in a
shaded semi-circle under an arch of three curved lines. The hand is palmer,
thumb out, first and middle fingers upright and two remaining fingers to palm.
"MICROPROSOPUS" is written horizontally above the arch, "Gnosis" to the left and
"Atziluth" "Jezirah" "BRIAH" "Sulphur" to the right in rows. Following the arch
outside to the left is "EIS THS". Following the arch outside to the right is
"GR:alpha-iota-omega-nu-alpha-sigma Alpha-mu-eta-nu" --- Greek is difficult to
tell from Latin letters here, and the first part looks very much like "aiwvas",
almost Crowley's "Aiwass" and very possibly a subconscious inspiration for it.
There is a suggestion of a nimbus about the head. The section next down is
contained largely within a cloud. To the left, outside "Psyche". To the right
outside in rows "Aziah" "JEZIRAH" "Mercury". In the center is a book held open
by a right hand flat against the left page and open, palm to book, fingers
extending to base of right page. At the top of this portion, just below the chin
of the upper section head is the word " GR:eta delta-omicron-xi-alpha" (the
glory). Immediately below this and above the spine of the book is an
unrecognizable character a little like GR:mu or Mem from the Alphabet of the
Magi, although this is the normal place for "Alpha". Immediately below the book
is " GR:eta delta-upsilon-nu-alpha-mu-iota-sigma" (the power). There is a
strange character below this, at the bottom of this section and like that noted
above --- even harder to recognize, but this is the usual position for "Omega".
The third section from the top and second from the bottom has two pillars
issuing from the cloud. These have fluted capitols and ringed bases extending to
form trapezoidal forms. The pillar to the left is black and marked at center
with "B", while that to the right is white with "J". To the left is "Hyle". To
the right in rows "Briah" "AZIAH" and a small rectangle. There is a crescent
moon between the bases of the drums, horns angled right and slightly upward. The
lowest portion shows feet issuing from the bases of the pillars and cocked
outward on a mass of rock to the left and a sea to the right. " GR:eta
beta-alpha-sigma-iota-lambda-epsilon-iota-alpha" (the kingdom) is written on the
base of this rock. The rectangular frame is broken at the bottom to admit crude
Hebrew letters, evidently Yod-Shin-Heh-Vau-Heh or something similar with the
doubt being on the HB:Heh 's looking like HB:Chet 's. Below this is what appears
to be GR:Omicron-tau-iota omicron-delta epsilon-delta-iota-nu, but the poor
penmanship makes certain identification impossible. The entire figure gives the
impression of a man with head in heaven and feet on earth.}
Religion is patient --- the religion of great thinkers and of martyrs.
It is benevolent like Christ and the apostles, like Vincent de Paul, and like
Fenelon.
It envies not either the dignities or the goods of the earth. {74} It is the
religion of the fathers of the desert, of St. Francis, and of St. Bruno, of the
Sisters of Charity, and of the Brothers of Saint-Jean-de- Dieu.
It is neither quarrelsome nor intriguing. It prays, does good, and waits.
It is humble, it is sweet-tempered, it inspires only devotion and sacrifice. It
has, in short, all the characteristics of Charity because it is Charity itself.
Men, on the contrary, are impatient, persecutors, jealous, cruel, ambitious,
unjust, and they show themselves as such, even in the name of that religion
which they have succeeded in calumniating, but which they will never cause to
life. Men pass away, but truth is eternal.
Daughter of Charity, and creator of Charity in her own turn, true religion is
essentially that which realizes; she believes in the miracles of faith, because
she herself accomplishes them every day when she practises charity. Now, a
religion which practises charity may flatter herself that she realizes all the
dreams of divine love. Moreover, the faith of the hierarchical church transforms
mysticism into realism by the efficacy of her sacraments. No more signs, no more
figures whose strength is not in grace, and which do not really give what they
promise! Faith animates all, makes all in some sort visible and palpable; even
the parables of Jesus Christ take a body and a soul. They show, at Jerusalem,
the house of the wicked rich man!! The thin symbolisms of the primitive
religions overturned by science, and deprived of the life of faith, resemble
those whitened bones which covered the field that Ezekiel saw in his vision. The
Spirit of the Saviour, the spirit of faith, the spirit of {75} charity, has
breathed upon this dust; and all that which was dead has taken life again so
really that one recognizes no more yesterday's corpses in these living creatures
of to-day. And why should one recognize them, since the world is renewed, since
St. Paul burned at Ephesus the books of the hierophants? Was then St. Paul a
barbarian, and was he committing a crime against science? No, but he burned the
winding-sheets of the resuscitated that they might forget death. Why, then, do
we to-day recall the qabalistic origins of dogma? Why do we join again the
figures of the Bible to the allegories of Hermes? Is it to condemn St. Paul, is
it to bring doubt to believers? No, indeed, for believers have no need of our
book; they will not read it, and they will not wish to understand it. But we
wish to show to the innumerable crowd of those who doubt, that faith is attached
to the reason of all the centuries, to the science of all the sages. We wish to
force human liberty to respect divine authority, reason to recognize the bases
of faith, so that faith and authority, in their turn, may never again proscribe
liberty and reason.
{76}
ARTICLE III
SOLUTION OF THE THIRD PROBLEM
THE RATIONALE OF THE MYSTERIES
FAITH being the aspiration to the unknown, the object of faith is absolutely and
necessarily this one thing --- Mystery.
In order to formulate its aspirations, faith is forced to borrow aspirations and
images from the known.
But she specializes the employment of these forms, by placing them together in a
manner which, in the known order of things, is impossible. Such is the profound
reason of the apparent absurdity of symbolism.
Let us give an example:
If faith said that God was impersonal, one might conclude that God is only a
word, or, at most, a thing.
If it is said that God was a person, one would represent to oneself the
intelligent infinite, under the necessarily bounded form of an individual.
It says, "God is one in three persons," in order to express that one conceives
in God both unity and multiplicity.
The formula of a mystery excludes necessarily the very intelligence of that
formula, so far as it is borrowed from the world of known things; for, if one
understood it, it would express the known and not the unknown.
It would then belong to science, and no longer to religion, that is to say, to
faith. {77}
The object of faith is a mathematical problem, whose "x" escapes the procedures
of our algebra.
Absolute mathematics prove only the necessity, and, in consequence, the
existence of this unknown which we represent by the untranslatable "x."
Now science progresses in vain; its progress is indefinite, but always
relatively finite; it will never find in the language of the finite the complete
expression of the infinite. Mystery is therefore eternal.
To bring into the logic of the known the terms of a profession of faith is to
withdraw them from faith, which has for positive bases anti-logic, that is to
say, the impossibility of logically explaining the unknown.
For the Jew, God is separate from humanity; He does not live in His creatures,
He is infinite egoism.
For the Mussulman, God is a word before which one prostrates oneself, on the
authority of Mohammed.
For the Christian, God has revealed himself in humanity, proves Himself by
charity, and reigns by virtue of the order which constitutes the hierarchy.
The hierarchy is the guardian of dogma, for whose letter and spirit she alike
demands respect. The sectarians who, in the name of their reason or, rather, of
their individual unreason, have laid hands on dogma, have, in the very act, lost
the spirit of charity; they have excommunicated themselves.
The Catholic, that is to say the universal, dogma merits that magnificent name
by harmonizing in one all the religious aspirations of the world; with Moses and
Mohammed, it affirms the unity of God; with Zoroaster, Hermes and Plato, it
recognizes in Him the infinite trinity of its own regeneration; {78} it
reconciles the living numbers of Pythagoras with the monadic Word of St.
John;<<The author had perhaps no space to continue with a demonstration that the
Gospel legend itself is a macedoine of those of Bacchus, Adonis, Osiris, and a
hundred others, and that the Mass, and Christian ceremonies generally, have
similarly pagan sources. --- O. M.>> so much, science and reason will agree. It
is then in the eyes of reason and of science themselves the most perfect, that
is to say the most complete, dogma which has ever been produced in the world.
Let science and reason grant us so much; we shall ask nothing more of them.
"God exists; there is only one God, and He punishes those who do evil," said
Moses.
"God is everywhere; He is in us, and the good that we do to me we do it to God,"
said Jesus.
"Fear" is the conclusion of the dogma of Moses.
"Love" is the conclusion of the dogma of Jesus.
The typical ideal of the life of God in humanity is incarnation.
Incarnation necessitates redemption, and operates it in the name of the
reversibility of solidarity,<<This and many similar phrases employed in the
controversies of the period are to-day practically unintelligible. Levi was at
one time a kind of Socialist. --- TRANS.>> or, in other words, of universal
communion, the dogmatic principle of the spirit of charity.
To substitute human arbitrament for the legitimate despotism of the law, to put,
in other words, tyranny in the place of authority, is the work of all
Protestantism and of all democracies. What men call liberty is the sanction of
illegitimate authority, or, rather, the fiction of power not sanctioned by
authority. {79}
John Calvin protested against the stakes of Rome, in order to give himself the
right to burn Michael Servetus. Every people that liberates itself from a
Charles I, or a Louis XVI, must undergo a Robespierre or a Cromwell and there is
a more or less absurd anti-pope being all protestations against the legitimate
papacy.
The divinity of Jesus Christ only exists in the Catholic Church, to which He
transmits hierarchically His life and His divine powers. This divinity is
sacerdotal and royal by virtue of communion; but outside of that communion,
every affirmation of the divinity of Jesus Christ is idolatrous, because Jesus
Christ could not be an isolated God.
The number of Protestants is of no importance to Catholic truth.
If all men were blind, would that be a reason for denying the existence of the
sun?
Reason, in protesting against dogma, proves sufficiently that she has not
invented it; but she is forced to admire the morality which results from that
dogma. Now, if morality is a light, it follows that dogma must be a sun; light
does not come from shadows.
Between the two abysses of polytheism, and an absurd and ignorant theism, there
is only one possible medium: the mystery of the most Holy Trinity.
Between speculative theism, and anthropomorphiosm, there is only one possible
medium: the mystery of incarnation.
Between immoral fatality, and Draconic responsibility, which would conclude the
damnation of all beings, there is only one possible mean: the mystery of
redemption.
The trinity is faith. {80}
The incarnation is hope.
The redemption is charity.
The trinity is the hierarchy.
Incarnation is the divine authority of the Church.
Redemption is the unique, infallible, unfailing and Catholic priesthood.
The Catholic Church alone possesses an invariable dogma, and by its very
constitution is incapable of corrupting morality; she does not make innovations,
she explains. Thus, for example, the dogma of the immaculate conception is not
new; it was contained in the theotokon of the Council of Ephesus, and the
theotokon is a rigorous consequence of the Catholic dogma of the incarnation.
In the same way the Catholic Church makes no excommunications, she declares
them; and she alone can declare them, because she alone is guardian of unity.
Outside the vessel of Peter, there is nothing but the abyss. Protestants are
like people who have thrown themselves into the water in order to escape
sea-sickness.
It is of Catholicity, such as it is constituted in the Roman Church, that one
must say what Voltaire so boldly said of God: "If it did not exist, it would be
necessary to invent it." But if a man had been capable of inventing the spirit
of charity, he also would have invented God. Charity does not invent itself, it
reveals itself by its works, and it is then that one can cry with the Saviour of
the world: "Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God!"
To understand the spirit of charity is to understand all mysteries. {81}
ARTICLE IV
SOLUTION OF THE FOURTH PROBLEM
RELIGION PROVED BY THE OBJECTIONS WHICH PEOPLE
OPPOSE TO IT.
THE objections which one may make against religion may be made either in the
name of science, or in the name of reason, or in the name of faith.
Science cannot deny the facts of the existence of religion, of its establishment
and its influence upon the events of history.
It is forbidden to it to touch dogma; dogma belongs wholly to faith.
Science ordinarily arms itself against religion with a series of facts which it
is her duty to appreciate, which, in fact, she does appreciate thoroughly, but
which she condemns still more energetically than science does.
In doing that, science admits that religion is right, and herself wrong; she
lacks logic, manifests the disorder which every angry passion introduces into
the spirit of man, and admits the need that it has of being ceaselessly
redressed and directed by the spirit of charity.
Reason, on its side, examines dogma and finds it absurd.
But, if it were not so, reason would understand it; if reason understood it, it
would no longer be the formula of the unknown. {82}
It would be a mathematical demonstration of the infinite.
It would be the infinite finite, the unknown known, the immeasurable measured,
the indicible named.
That is to say that dogma could only cease to be absurd in the eyes of reason to
become, in the eyes of faith, science, reason and good sense in one, the most
monstrous and the most impossible of all absurdities.
Remain the objections of dissent.
The Jews, our fathers in religion, reproach us with having attacked the unity of
God, with having changed the immutable and eternal law, with adoring the
creature instead of the Creator.
These heavy reproaches are founded on their perfectly false notion of
Christianity.
Our God is the God of Moses, unique, immaterial, infinite God, sole object of
worship, and ever the same.
Like the Jews, we believe Him to be present everywhere, but, as they ought to
do, we believe Him living, thinking and loving in humanity, and we adore Him in
His works.
We have not changed His law, for the Jewish Decalogue is also the law of
Christians.
The law is immutable because it is founded on the eternal principles of Nature;
but the worship necessitated by the needs of man may change, and modify itself,
parallel with the changes in men themselves.
This signifies that the worship itself is immutable, but modifies itself as
language does.
Worship is a form of instruction; it is a language; one must translate it when
nations no longer understand it. {83}
We have translated, and not destroyed, the worship of Moses and of the prophets.
In adoring God in creation, we do not adore the creation itself.
In adoring God in Jesus Christ, it is God alone whom we adore, but God united to
humanity.
In making humanity divine, Christianity has revealed the human divinity.
The God of the Jews was inhuman, because they did not understand Him in His
works.
We are, then, more Israelite than the Israelites themselves. What they believe,
we believe with them, and better than they do. They accuse us of having
separated ourselves from them, and, on the contrary, it is they who wish to
separate from us.
We wait for them, the heart and the arms wide open.
We are, as they are, the disciples of Moses.
Like them, we come from Egypt, and we detest its slavery. But we have entered
into the Promised Land, and they obstinately abide and die in the desert.
Mohammedans are the bastards of Israel, or rather, they are his disinherited
brothers, like Esau.
Their belief is illogical, for they admit that Jesus is a great prophet, and
they treat Christians as infidels.
They recognize the Divine inspiration of Moses, yet they do not look upon the
Jews as their brothers.
They believe blindly in their blind prophet, the fatalist Mohammed, the enemy of
progress and of liberty.
Nevertheless, do not let us take away from Mohammed the {84} glory of having
proclaimed the unity of God among the idolatrous Arabs.
There are pure and sublime pages in the Qur'an.
In reading those pages, one may say with the children of Ishmael, "There is no
other God but God, and Mohammed is his prophet."
There are three thrones in heaven for the three prophets of the nations; but, at
the end of time, Mohammed will be replaced by Elias.
The Mussulmans do not reproach the Christians; they insult them.
They call them infidels and "giaours," that is to say, dogs. We have nothing to
reply to them.
One must not refute the Turks and the Arabs; one must instruct and civilize
them.
Remain dissident Christians, that is to say, those who, having broken the bond
of unity, declare themselves strangers to the charity of the Church.
Greek orthodoxy, that twin of the Roman Church which has not grown greater since
its separation, which counts no longer in religion, which, since Photius, has
not inspired a single eloquence, is a church become entirely temporal, whose
priesthood is no more than a function regulated by the imperial policy of the
Tsar of All the Russias; a curious mummy of the primitive Church, still coloured
and gilded with all its legends and all its rites, which its popes no longer
understand; the shadow of a living church, but one which insisted on stopping
when that church moved on, and which is now no more than its bloated-out and
headless silhouette.
Then, the Protestants, those eternal regulators of anarchy, {85} who have broken
down dogma, and are trying always to fill the void with reasonings, like the
sieve of the Danaides; these weavers of religious fantasy, all of whose
innovations are negative, who have formulated for their own use an unknown
calling itself better known, mysteries better explained, a more defined
infinite, a more restrained immensity, a more doubting faith, those who have
quintessentialized the absurd, divided charity, and taken acts of anarchy for
the principles of an entirely impossible hierarchy; those men who wish to
realize salvation by faith alone, because charity escapes them, and who can no
longer realize it, even upon the earth, for their pretended sacraments are no
longer anything but allegorical mummeries; they no longer give grace; they no
longer make God seen and touched; they are no longer, in a word, the signs of
the almighty power of faith, but the compelled witnesses of the eternal
impotence of doubt.
It is, then, against faith itself that the Reformation protested! Protestants
were right only in their protest against the inconsiderate and persecuting zeal
which wished to force consciences. They claimed the right to doubt, the right to
have less religion than others, or even to have none at all; they have shed
their blood for that sad privilege; they conquered it, they possess it; but they
will not take away from us that of pitying them and loving them. When the need
to believe again takes them, when their heart revolts against the tyranny of a
falsified reason when they become tired of the empty abstractions of their
arbitrary dogma, of the vague observances of their ineffective worship; when
their communion without the real presence, their churches without divinity, and
their morality without grace finally frighten {86} them; when they are sick with
the nostalgia of God --- will they not rise up like the prodigal son, and come
to throw themselves at the feet of the successor of Peter, saying: "Father, we
have sinned against heaven and in thy sight, and we are no more worthy to be
called thy sons, but count us among the humblest of thy servants"?
We will not speak of the criticism of Voltaire. That great mind was dominated by
an ardent love of truth and justice, but he lacked that rectitude of heart which
the intelligence of faith gives. Voltaire could not admit faith, because he did
not know how to love. The spirit of charity did not reveal itself to that soul
which had no tenderness, and he bitterly criticized the hearth of which he did
not feel the warmth, and the lamp of which he did not see the light. If religion
were such as he saw it, he would have been a thousand times right to attack it,
and one would be obliged to fall on one's knees before the heroism of his
courage. Voltaire would be the Messiah of good sense, the Hercules destructor of
fanaticism. ... But he laughed too much to understand Him who said: "Happy are
they who weep," and the philosophy of laughter will never have anything in
common with the religion of tears.
Voltaire parodied the Bible, dogma and worship; and then he mocked and insulted
that parody.
Only those who recognize religion in Voltaire's parody can take offence at it.
The Voltaireans are like the frogs in the fable who leap upon the log, and then
make fun of royal majesty. They are at liberty to take the log for a king, they
are at liberty to make once more that Roman caricature of which Tertullian once
made mirth, that which represented the {87} God of the Christians under the
figure of a man with an ass's head. Christians will shrug their shoulders when
they see this knavery, and pray God for the poor ignorants who imagine that they
insult them.
M. the Count Joseph de Maistre, after having, in one of his most eloquent
paradoxes, represented the hangman as a sacred being, and a permanent
incarnation of divine justice upon earth, suggested that one should raise to the
old man of Ferney a statue executed by the hangman. There is depth in this
thought. Voltaire, in effect, also was, in the world, a being at the same time
providential and fatal, endowed with insensibility for the accomplishment of his
terrible functions. He was, in the domain of intelligence, a hangman, an
extirminator armed by the justice of God Himself.
God sent Voltaire between the century of Bossuet and that of Napoleon in order
to destroy everything that separates those two geniuses and to unite them in one
alone.
He was the Samson of the spirit, always ready to shake the columns of the
temple; but in order to make him turn in spite of himself the mill of religious
progress, Providence made him blind of heart.
{88}
ARTICLE V
SOLUTION OF THE LAST PROBLEM
TO SEPARATE RELIGION FROM SUPERSTITION AND FANATICISM
SUPERSTITION, from the Latin word "superstes," surviving, is the sign which
survives the idea which it represents; it is the form preferred to the thing,
the rite without reason, faith become insensate through isolating itself. It is
in consequence the corpse of religion, the death of life, stupefaction
substituted for inspiration.
Fanaticism is superstition become passionate, its name comes from the word
"fanum," which signifies "temple," it is the temple put in place of God, it is
the human and temporal interest of the priest substituted for the honour of
priesthood, the wretched passion of the man exploiting the faith of the
believer.
In the fable of the ass loaded with relics, La Fontaine tells us that the animal
thought that he was being adored; he did not tell us that certain people indeed
thought that they were adoring the animal. These people were the superstitious.
If any one had laughed at their stupidity, he would very likely have been
assassinated, for from superstition to fanaticism is only one step.
Superstition is religion interpreted by stupidity; fanaticism is religion
serving as a pretext to fury.
Those who intentionally and maliciously confound religion {89} itself with
superstition and fanaticism, borrow from stupidity its blind prejudices, and
would borrow perhaps in the same way from fanaticism its injustices and angers.
Inquisitors or Septembrisors,<<Those who took part in the massacres of the
Revolution of the 4th September, 1792. --- TRANS.>> what matter names? The
religion of Jesus Christ condemns, and has always condemned, assassins.
{90}
RESUME OF THE FIRST PART
IN THE FORM OF A DIALOGUE
FAITH, SCIENCE, REASON.
SCIENCE. You will never make me believe in the existence of God.
FAITH. You have not the privilege of believing, but you will never prove to me
that God does not exist.
SCIENCE. In order to prove it to you, I must first know what God is.
FAITH. You will never know it. If you knew it, you could teach it to me; and
when I knew it, I should no longer believe it.
SCIENCE. Do you then believe without knowing what you believe?
FAITH. Oh, do not let us play with words! It is you who do not know what I
believe, and I believe it precisely because you do not know it. Do you pretend
to be infinite? Are you not stopped at every step by mystery? Mystery is for you
an infinite ignorance which would reduce to nothing your finite knowledge, if I
did not illumine it with my burning aspirations; and if, when you say, "I no
longer know," I did not cry, "As for me, I begin to believe."
SCIENCE. But your aspirations and their object are not (and cannot be for me)
anything but hypotheses. {91}
FAITH. Doubtless, but they are certainties for me, since without those
hypotheses I should be doubtful even about your certainties.
SCIENCE. But if you begin where I stop, you begin always too rashly and too
soon. My progress bears witness that I am ever advancing.
FAITH. What does your progress matter, if I am always walking in front of you?
SCIENCE. You, walking! Dreamer of eternity, you have disdained earth too much;
your feet are benumbed.
FAITH. I make my children carry me.
SCIENCE. They are the blind carrying the blind; beware of precipices!
FAITH. No, my children are by no means blind; on the contrary, they enjoy
twofold sight: they see, by thine eyes, what thou canst show them upon earth,
and they contemplate, by mine, what I show them in Heaven.
SCIENCE. What does Reason think of it?
REASON. I think, my dear teachers, that you illustrate a touching fable, that of
the blind man and the paralytic. Science reproaches Faith with not knowing how
to walk upon the earth, and Faith says that Science sees nothing of her
aspirations and of eternity in the sky. Instead of quarrelling, Science and
Faith ought to unite; let Science carry Faith, and let Faith console Science by
teaching her to hope and to love!
SCIENCE. It is a fine ideal, but Utopian. Faith will tell me absurdities. I
prefer to walk without her.
FAITH. What do you call absurdities?
SCIENCE. I call absurdities propositions contrary to my demonstrations; as, for
example, that three make one, that a {92} God has become man, that is to say,
that the Infinite has made itself finite, that the Eternal died, that God
punished his innocent Son for the sin of guilty men. ...
FAITH. Say no more about it. As enunciated by you, these propositions are in
fact absurdities. Do you know what is the number of God, you who do not know
God? Can you reason about the operations of the unknown? Can you understand the
mysteries of charity? I must always be absurd for you; for, if you understood
them, my affirmations would be absorbed by your theorems; I should be you, and
you would be me; or, to put it better, I should no longer exist, and Reason, in
the presence of the infinite, would halt, blinded for evermore by your doubts,
which are as infinite as space.
SCIENCE. At least, you should never usurp my authority, or give me the lie in my
own domains.
FAITH. I have never done so, and I could never do so.
SCIENCE. So! You have never believed, for example, that a virgin could become a
mother, without ceasing to be a virgin, in the physical, natural, positive order
of things, in spite of all the laws of Nature; you do not affirm that a piece of
bread is not only a God, but a real human body with its bones and its veins, its
organs, its blood; such, in short, that you make of your children who eat this
bread a little race of cannibals.
FAITH. There is not a single Christian who would not be revolted by what you
have just said. That sufficiently proves that they do not understand my
teachings in this positive and gross sense. The supernatural which I affirm is
above Nature, and consequently could never oppose itself to her; the words of
Faith are understood only by Faith; Science has only to repeat them to pervert
their proper sense. I employ these {93} words because I have no others; but
since you find my remarks absurd, you should conclude from that that I give to
the same words a meaning which escapes you. When the Saviour revealed the dogma
of the real presence, did he not say: "The flesh profiteth nothing, but my words
are spirit and life." I do not give you the mystery of the incarnation for an
anatomical phenomenon, nor that of transubstantiation for a chemical
manipulation. By what right do you exclaim "Absurd!"? I do not reason about any
of the things you know; by what right do you say that I talk unreasonably?
SCIENCE. I begin to understand you, or rather, I see that I shall never
understand you. This being so, let us remain separate; I shall never have need
of you.
FAITH. I am less proud, and I recognize that you may be useful to me perhaps.
Perhaps, too, you will be very sad and very desperate without me, and I will not
leave you unless Reason consents.
REASON. Be well 'ware of doing so! I am necessary to both of you. And I, what
should I do without you? In order to be just, I need to know and to believe. But
I must never confound what I know with what I believe. To know is to believe no
longer; to believe is not to know as yet. The object of Science is the known;
Faith does not occupy itself with that, and leaves it all to Science. The object
of Faith is the unknown; Science may seek it, but not define it; she is then
obliged, at least provisionally, to accept the definitions of Faith which it is
impossible for her even to criticize. Only, if Science renounces Faith, she
renounces hope and love, whose existence and necessity are as evident for
Science as for Faith. Faith, as a psychological fact, pertains to the realm of
{94} Science; and Science, as the manifestation of the light of God within the
human intelligence, pertains to the realm of Faith. Science and Faith must then
admit each other, respect each other mutually, support each other, and bear each
other aid in case of need, but without ever encroaching the one upon the other.
The means of uniting them is --- never to confound them. Never can there be
contradiction between them, for although they use the same words,, they do not
speak the same language.
FAITH. Oh, well, Sister Science; what do you say about it?
SCIENCE. I say that we are separated by a deplorable misunderstanding, and that
henceforward we shall be able to walk together. But to which of your different
creeds do you wish to attach me? Shall I be Jewish, Catholic, Mohammedan, or
Protestant?
FAITH. You will remain Science, and you will be universal.
SCIENCE. That is to say, Catholic, if I understand you correctly. But what
should I think of the different religions?
FAITH. Judge them by their works. Seek true Charity, and when you have found
her, ask her to which religion she belongs.
SCIENCE. It is certainly not to that of the Inquisition, and of the authors of
the Massacre of St. Bartholomew.
FAITH. It is to that of St. John the Almoner, of St. Francois de Sales,<<Levi
was certainly never the dupe of this boudoir Theologian. He accepted him without
perusal, as the Englishman accepts Shakespeare and Milton. --- O. M.>> of St.
Vincent de Paul, of Fenelon, and so many more. {95}
SCIENCE. Admit that if religion has produced much good, she has also done much
evil.
FAITH. When one kills in the name of the God who said, "Thou shalt not
kill,"<<And habitually commanded the rape of virgins and the massacre of
children. 1 Sam. xv. 3, etc. --- O. M.>> when one persecutes in the name of Him
who commands us to forgive our enemies, when one propagates darkness in the name
of Him who tells us not to hide the light under a bushel, is it just to
attribute the crime to the very law which condemns it? Say, if you wish to be
just, that in spite of religion, much evil has been done upon earth. But also,
to how many virtues has it not given birth? How many are the devotions, how many
the sacrifices, of which we do not know! Have you counted those noble hearts,
both men and women, who renounced all joys to enter the service of all sorrows?
Those souls devoted to labour and to prayer, who have strewn their pathways with
good deeds? Who founded asylums for orphans and old men, hospitals for the sick,
retreats for the repentant? These institutions, as glorious as they are modest,
are the real works with which the annals of the Church are filled; religious
wars and the persecution of heretics belong to the politics of savage centuries.
The heretics, moreover, were themselves murderers. Have you forgotten the
burning of Michael Servetus and the massacre of our priests, renewed, still in
the name of humanity and reason, by the revolutionaries who hated the
Inquisition and the Massacre of St. Bartholomew? Men are always cruel, it is
true, but only when they forget the religion whose watchwords are blessing and
pardon.
SCIENCE. O Faith! Pardon me, then, if I cannot believe; {96} but I know now why
you believe. I respect your hopes, and share your desires. But I must find by
seeking; and in order to seek, I must doubt.
REASON. Work, then, and seek, O Science, but respect the oracles of Faith! When
your doubt leaves a gap in universal enlightenment, allow Faith to fill it! Walk
distinguished the one from the other, but leaning the one upon the other, and
you will never go astray.
{97}
PART II
PHILOSOPHICAL MYSTERIES
PRELIMINARY CONSIDERATIONS
IT has been said that beauty is the splendour of truth.
Now moral beauty is goodness. It is beautiful to be good.
To be intelligently good, one must be just.
To be just, one must act reasonably.
To act reasonably, one must have the knowledge of reality.
To have the knowledge of reality, one must have consciousness of truth.
To have consciousness of truth, one must have an exact notion of being.
Being, truth, reason and justice are the common objects of the researches of
science, and of the aspirations of faith. The conceptions, whether real or
hypothetical, of a supreme power transform justice into Providence; and the
notion of divinity, from this point of view, becomes accessible to science
herself.
Science studies Being in its partial manifestation; faith supposes it, or rather
admits it "a priori" as a whole.
Science seeks the truth in everything; faith refers everything to an universal
and absolute truth.
Science records realities in detail: faith explains them by {98} totalized
reality to which science cannot bear witness, but which the very existence of
the details seems to force her to recognize and to admit.
Science submits the reasons of persons and things to the universal mathematical
reason; faith seeks, or rather supposes, an intelligent and absolute reason for
(and above) mathematics themselves.
Science demonstrates justice by justness; faith gives an absolute justness to
justice, in subordinating it to Providence.
One sees here all that faith borrows from science, and all that science, in its
turn, owes to faith.
Without faith, science is circumscribed by an absolute doubt, and finds itself
eternally penned within the risky empiricism of a reasoning scepticism; without
science, faith constructs its hypotheses at random, and can only blindly
prejudge the causes of the effects of which she is ignorant.
The great chain which reunites science and faith is analogy.
Science is obliged to respect a belief whose hypotheses are analogous to
demonstrated truths. Faith, which attributes everything to God, is obliged to
admit science as being a natural revelation which, by the partial manifestation
of the laws of eternal reason, gives a scale of proportion to all the
aspirations and to all the excursions of the soul into the domain of the
unknown.
It is, then, faith alone that can give a solution to the mysteries of science;
and in return, it is science alone that demonstrates the necessity of the
mysteries of faith.
Outside the union and the concourse of these two living forces of the
intelligence, there is for science nothing but {99} scepticism and despair, for
faith nothing but rashness and fanaticism.
If faith insults science, she blasphemes; if science misunderstand faith, she
abdicates.
Now let us hear them speak in harmony!
"Being is everywhere," says science. "it is multiple and variable in its forms,
unique in its essence, and immutable in its laws. The relative demonstrates the
existence of the absolute. Intelligence exists in being. Intelligence animates
and modifies matter."
"Intelligence is everywhere," says faith; "Life is nowhere fatal because it is
ruled. This rule is the expression of supreme Wisdom. The absolute in
intelligence, the supreme regulator of forms, the living ideal of spirits, is
God."
"In its identity with the ideal, being is truth," says science.
"In its identity with the ideal, truth is God," replies faith.
"In its identity with my demonstrations, being is reality," says science.
"In its identity with my legitimate aspirations, reality is my dogma," says
faith.
"In its identity with the Word, being is reason," says science.
"In its identity with the spirit of charity, the highest reason is my
obedience," says faith.
"In its identity with the motive of reasonable acts, being is justice," says
science.
"In its identity with the principle of charity, justice is Providence," replies
faith.
Sublime harmony of all certainties with all hopes, of the {100} absolute in
intelligence with the absolute in love! The Holy Spirit, the spirit of charity,
should then conciliate all, and transform all into His own light. Is it not the
spirit of intelligence, the spirit of science, the spirit of counsel, the spirit
of force? "He must come," says the Catholic liturgy, "and it will be, as it
were, a new creation; and He will change the face of the earth."
"To laugh at philosophy is already to philosophize," said Pascal, referring to
that sceptical and incredulous philosophy which does not recognize faith. And if
there existed a faith which trampled science underfoot, we should not say that
to laugh at such a faith would be a true act of religion, for religion, which is
all charity, does not tolerate mockery; but one would be right in blaming this
love for ignorance, and in saying to this rash faith, "Since you slight your
sister, you are not the daughter of God!"
Truth, reality, reason, justice, Providence, these are the five rays of the
flamboyant star in the centre of which science will write the word "being," ---
to which faith will add the ineffable name of God.
SOLUTION OF THE PHILOSOPHICAL
PROBLEMS
FIRST SERIES
QUESTION. What is truth?
ANSWER. Idea identical with being. {101}<<WEH NOTE: Obvious error: confusion of
map with territory.>>
Q. What is reality?
A. Knowledge identical with being.
Q. What is reason?
A. The Word identical with being.
Q. What is justice?
A. The motive of acts identical with being.
Q. What is the absolute?
A. Being.
Q. Can one conceive anything superior to being?
A. No; but one conceives in being itself something supereminent and
transcendental.
Q. What is that?
A. The supreme reason of being.
Q. Do you know it, and can you define it?
A. Faith alone affirms it, and names it God.
Q. Is there anything above truth?
A. Above known truth, there is unknown truth.
Q. How can one construct reasonable hypotheses with regard to this truth?
A. By analogy and proportion.
Q. How can one define it?
A. By the symbols of faith.
Q. Can one say of reality the same thing as of truth?
A. Exactly the same thing.
Q. Is there anything above reason?
A. Above finite reason, there is infinite reason.
Q. What is infinite reason?
A. It is that supreme reason of being that faith calls God.<<WEH NOTE: This is
the characteristic phrase of the philosophy of 18th century enlightenment: "God
is Reason" --- also the characteristic error. 19th century philosophy continued
this into Determinism and the now discredited concept of "Natural Law".>>
Q. Is there anything above justice? {102}
A. Yes; according to faith, there is the Providence of God, and the sacrifice of
man.
Q. What is this sacrifice?
A. It is the willing and spontaneous surrender of right.
Q. Is this sacrifice reasonable?
A. No; it is a kind of folly greater than reason, for reason is forced to admire
it.
Q. How does one call a man who acts according to truth, reality, reason and
justice?
A. A moral man.
Q. And if he sacrifices his interests to justice?
A. A man of honour.
Q. And if in order to imitate the grandeur and goodness of Providence he does
more than his duty, and sacrifices his right to the good of others?
A. A hero.
Q. What is the principle of true heroism?
A. Faith.
Q. What is its support?
A. Hope.
Q. And its rule?
A. Charity.
Q. What is the Good?
A. Order.
Q. What is the Evil?
A. Disorder.
Q. What is permissible pleasure?
A. Enjoyment of order.
Q. What is forbidden pleasure?
A. Enjoyment of disorder. {103}
Q. What are the consequences of each?
A. Moral life and moral death.
Q. Has then hell, with all its horrors, its justification in religious dogma?
A. Yes; it is a rigorous consequence of a principle.
Q. What is this principle?
A. Liberty.
Q. What is liberty?
A. The right to do one's duty, with the possibility of not doing it.
Q. What is failing in one's duty?
A. It involves the loss of one's right. Now, right being eternal, to lose it is
to suffer an eternal loss.
Q. Can one repair a fault?
A. Yes; by expiation.
Q. What is expiation?
A. Working overtime. Thus, because I was lazy yesterday, I had to do a double
task to-day.
Q. What are we to think of those who impose on themselves voluntary sufferings?
A. If they do so in order to overcome the brutal fascination of pleasure, they
are wise; if to suffer instead of others, they are generous; but if they do it
without discretion and without measure, they are imprudent.
Q. Thus, in the eyes of true philosophy, religion is wise in all that it
ordains?
A. You see that it is so.
Q. But if, after all, we were deceived in our eternal hopes?
A. Faith does not admit that doubt. But philosophy herself should reply that all
the pleasures of the earth are not {104} worth one day of wisdom, and that all
the triumphs of ambition are not worth a single minute of heroism and of
charity.
SECOND SERIES
QUESTION. What is man?
ANSWER. Man is an intelligent and corporeal being made in the image of God and
of the world, one in essence, triple in substance, mortal and immortal.
Q. You say, "triple in substance." Has man, then, two souls or two bodies?
A. No; there is in him a spiritual soul, a material body, and a plastic medium.
Q. What is the substance of this medium?
A. Light, partially volatile, and partially fixed.
Q. What is the volatile part of this light?
A. Magnetic fluid.<<WEH NOTE: This passage derives from the efforts of Newton,
Mesmer and others to quantify the astral body. 18th and 19th century efforts to
measure ectoplasm, oddic force, etc. and to physically measure an essence of
life have persisted to the verge of the 21st century in a strange
pseudo-science. At least in the 18th and 19th centuries there was the idea of
the luminous Aeyther as a partial justification for this sort of thing. Now it
is generally considered a curiosity dependent on subjective measurement without
the objective external instrumentation required by hard science. This concept
has led to a vast array of quack medical theories and the loss of otherwise
promising philosophies. Bulwar Lytton used the idea; W. Reich was imprisoned for
trying to cure with it. Crowley lost much time over it in his later years in
trying to market his Amrita derivations. The future may disclose some substance
here, but it tends to "confusion of the planes" more often than not.>>
Q. And the fixed part?
A. The fluidic or fragrant body.
Q. Is the existence of this body demonstrated?
A. Yes; by the most curious and the most conclusive experiences. We shall speak
of them in the third part of this work.
Q. Are these experiences articles of faith?
A. No, they pertain to science.<<WEH NOTE: Although this is not essential to
Thelema, Crowley's dependence on it is a measure of his place in time. "The
Method of Science. The Aim of Religion." --- A valid perspective, but not
without potential for misapplication. This, more than anything else, is the
influence of Levi on Crowley's philosophy. Accidents of emphasis in Levi's works
often became seeds for fruitless avenues of research in Crowley's effort.>>
Q. But will science preoccupy herself with it?
A. She already preoccupies herself with it. We have written this book and you
are reading it.
Q. Give us some notions of this plastic medium.
A. It is formed of astral or terrestrial light, and transmits {105} the double
magnetization of it to the human body. The soul, by acting on this light through
its volitions, can dissolve it or coagulate it, project it or withdraw it. It is
the mirror of the imagination and of dreams. It reacts upon the nervous system,
and thus produces the movements of the body. This light can dilate itself
indefinitely, and communicate its reflections at considerable distances; it
magnetizes the bodies submitted to the action of man, and can, by concentrating
itself, again draw them to him. It can take all the forms evoked by thought,
and, in the transitory coagulations of its radiant particles, appear to the
eyes; it can even offer a sort of resistance to the touch. But these
manifestations and uses of the plastic medium being abnormal, the luminous
instrument of precision cannot produce them without being strained, and there is
danger of either habitual hallucination, or of insanity.
Q. What is animal magnetism?
A. The action of one plastic medium upon another, in order to dissolve or
coagulate it. By augmenting the elasticity of the vital light and its force of
projection, one sends it forth as far as one will, and withdraws it completely
loaded with images; but this operation must be favoured by the slumber of the
subject, which one produces by coagulating still further the fixed part of his
medium.
Q. Is magnetism contrary to morality and religion?
A. Yes, when one abuses it.
Q. In what does the abuse of it consist?
A. In employing it in a disordered manner, or for a disordered object.
Q. What is a disordered magnetism? {106}
A. An unwholesome fluidic emission, made with a bad intention; for example, to
know the secrets of others, or to arrive at unworthy ends.
Q. What is the result of it?
A. It puts out of order the fluidic instrument of precision, both in the case of
the magnetizer and of the magnetized. To this cause one must attribute the
immoralities and the follies with which a great number of those who occupy
themselves with magnetism are reproached.
Q. What conditions are required in order to magnetize properly?
A. Health of spirit and body; right intention, and discreet practice.
Q. What advantageous results can one obtain by discreet magnetism?
A. The cure of nervous diseases, the analysis of presentiments, the re-
establishment of fluidic harmonies, and the rediscovery of certain secrets of
Nature.
Q. Explain that to us in a more complete manner.
A. We shall do so in the third part of this work, which will treat specially of
the mysteries of Nature.
{107}
PART III
THE MYSTERIES OF NATURE
THE GREAT MAGICAL AGENT
WE have spoken of a substance extended in the infinite.
{Illustration on page 108 described:
This is sub-titled below "THE TENTH KEY OF THE TAROT".
It is a type of the Wheel of Fortune. The wheel itself is erected on a wooden
post, and has a crank affixed to the hub. There is no image of Fortuna to turn
it. The base of the post is held by a blunt double crescent on the ground,
rounded horns slightly up and in parallel like a hot-dog bun. Two nosed serpents
issue from the base, cross once and arch toward the post just below the wheel.
The wheel is double, having an outer and an inner ring with eight spokes running
through both rims. The spokes have a circular expansion with central hole inside
and a bit short of the inner rim. These spokes appear to be riveted to the inner
rim. At the top of the wheel is the Nemesis seated on a platform as a sphinx
with a sword: head cloth, stern male face and woman's breasts, winged. The sword
is hilt to wheel and up to left. "ARCHEE" is written over the wing to the left.
Risking on the right of the wheel is a Hermanubus or variation of Serapis: Dog's
head, human body, carries a caduceus half hidden behind head and wheel, legs
before wheel. "AZOTH" is written above the head of this figure. A demon
reminiscent of Proteus descends the wheel on the left. His head is bearded and
horned, his legs are tentacular and finned. He carries a trident below. "HYLE"
is written below his head.}
That substance is one which is heaven and earth; that is to say, according to
its degrees of polarization, subtle or fixed. {108}
This substance is what Hermes Trismegistus calls the great "Telesma." When it
produces splendour, it is called Light.
It is this substance which God creates before everything else, when He says,
"Let there be light."
It is at once substance and movement.
It is fluid, and a perpetual vibration.
Its inherent force which set it is motion is called "magnetism."
In the infinite, this unique substance is the ether, or the etheric light.
In the stars which it magnetizes, it becomes astral light.
In organized beings, light, or magnetic fluid.
In man it forms the "astral body," or the "plastic medium."
The will of intelligent beings acts directly on this light, and by means of it
on all that part of Nature which is submitted to the modifications of
intelligence.
This light is the common mirror of all thoughts and all forms; it preserves the
images of everything that has been, the reflections of past worlds, and, by
analogy, the sketches of worlds to come. It is the instrument of thaumaturgy and
divination, as remains for us to explain in the third and last part of this
work. {109}
FIRST BOOK
MAGNETIC MYSTERIES
CHAPTER I
THE KEY OF MESMERISM
MESMER rediscovered the secret science of Nature; he did not invent it.
The first unique and elementary substance whose existence he proclaims in his
aphorisms, was known by Hermes and Pythagoras.
Synesius, who sings it in his hymns, had found it revealed in the Platonistic
records of the School of Alexandria:
GR:Mu-iota-alpha pi-alpha-gamma-alpha mu-iota-alpha
rho-iota-zeta-alpha
Tau-rho-iota-phi-alpha-eta-sigma
epsilon-lambda-alpha-mu-pi-epsilon
mu-omicron-rho-phi-alpha
. . . . . . .
Pi-epsilon-rho-iota gamma-alpha-rho
sigma-pi-alpha-rho-epsilon-iota-sigma-alpha
pi-nu-omicron-iota-alpha
Chi-theta-omicron-nu-omicron-sigma
epsilon-zeta-omega-omega-sigma-epsilon
mu-omicron-iota-rho-alpha-sigma
Pi-omicron-lambda-upsilon-delta-alpha-iota-delta-alpha-
lambda omicron-iota-sigma-iota
mu-omicron-rho-alpha-iota-sigma
"A single source, a single root of light, jets out and spreads itself into three
branches of splendour. A breath blows round the earth, and vivifies in
innumerable forms all parts of animated substance." (HYMN II --- "Synesius.")
Mesmer saw in elementary matter a substance indifferent to movement as to rest.
Submitted to movement, it is volatile; fallen back into rest, it is fixed; and
he did not understand that movement is inherent in the first substance; that it
results, not from its indifference, but from its aptitude, combined with a
movement and a rest which are equilibrated {110} the one by the other; that
absolute rest is nowhere in universal living matter, but that the fixed attracts
the volatile in order to fix it; while the volatile attacks the fixed in order
to volatilize it. That the supposed rest of particles apparently fixed, in
nothing but a more desperate struggle and a greater tension of their fluidic
forces. which by neutralizing each other make themselves immobile. It is thus
that, as Hermes says, that which is above is like that which is below; the same
force which expands steam, contracts and hardens the icicle;<<WEH NOTE: Nice
point, but the icicle is an exception. Because of its unusual properties, water
expands when it freezes. Much of this section reprises the kinetic theories of
Thermodynamics, recently demonstrated in the time preceding Levi's writings.
These theories are here united to the ideas described by Macrobius and
attributed to the ancients.>> everything obeys the laws of life which are
inherent in the original substance; this substance attracts and repels, in
coagulates itself and dissolves itself, with a constant harmony; it is double;
it is androgynous; it embraces itself, and fertilizes itself, it struggles,
triumphs, destroys, renews; but never abandons itself to inertia, because
inertia, for it, would be death.
It is this original substance to which the hieratic recital of Genesis refers
when the word of Elohim creates light by commanding it to exist.
The Elohim said, "Let there be light!" and there was light.
This light, whose Hebrew name is HB:Aleph-Vau-Resh, "aour," is the fluidic and
living gold of the hermetic philosophy. Its positive principle is their sulphur;
its negative principle, their mercury; and its equilibrated principles form what
they call their salt.
One must then, in place of the sixth aphorism of Mesmer which reads thus:
"Matter is indifferent as to whether it is in movement or at rest," establish
this proposition: "The universal matter is compelled to movement by its double
magnetization, and its fate is to seek equilibrium." {111}
Whence one may deduce these corollaries:
Regularity and variety in movement result from the different combinations of
equilibrium.
A point equilibrated on all sides remains at rest, for the very reason that it
is endowed with motion.
Fluid consists of rapidly moving matter, always stirred by the variation of the
balancing forces.
A solid is the same matter in slow movement, or at apparent rest because it is
more or less solidly balanced.
There is no solid body which would not immediately be pulverized, vanish in
smoke, and become invisible if the equilibrium of its molecules were to cease
suddenly.
There is no fluid which would not instantly become harder than the diamond, if
one could equilibrate its constituent molecules.<<WEH NOTE: These observations
betray an understandably inadequate knowledge of Thermodymanics.>>
To direct the magnetic forces is then to destroy or create forms; to produce to
all appearance, or to destroy bodies; it is to exercise the almighty power of
Nature.
Our plastic medium is a magnet which attracts or repels the astral light under
the pressure of the will. It is a luminous body which reproduces with the
greatest ease forms corresponding to ideas.
It is the mirror of the imagination. This body is nourished by astral light just
as the organic body is nourished by the products of the earth. During slumber,
it absorbs the astral light by immersion, and during waking, by a kind of
somewhat slow respiration. When the phenomena of natural somnambulism are
produced, the plastic medium is surcharged with ill-digested nourishment. The
will, although bound by the torpor of slumber, repels instinctively the medium
{112} towards the organs in order to disengage it, and a reaction, of mechanical
nature, takes place, which with the movement of the body equilibrates the light
of the medium. It is for that reason that it {is} so dangerous to wake
somnambulists suddenly, for the gorged medium may then withdraw itself suddenly
towards the common reservoir, and abandon the organs altogether; these are then
separated from the soul, and death is the result.
The state of somnambulism, whether natural or artificial, is then extremely
dangerous, because in uniting the phenomena of the waking state and the state of
slumber, it constitutes a sort of straddle between two worlds. The soul moves
the springs of the particular life while bathing itself in the universal life,
and experiences an inexpressible sense of well-being; it will then willingly let
go the nervous branches which hold it suspended above the current. In ecstasies
of every kind the situation is the same. If the will plunges into it with a
passionate effort, or even abandons itself entirely to it, the subject may
become insane or paralysed, or even die.
Hallucinations and vision result from wounds inflicted on the plastic medium,
and from its local paralysis. Sometimes it ceases to give forth rays, and
substitutes images condensed somehow or other to realities shown by the light;
sometimes it radiates with too much force, and condense itself outside and
around some chance and irregulated nucleus, as blood does in some bodily
growths. Then the chimeras of our brain take on a body, and seem to take on a
soul; we appear to ourselves radiant or deformed according to the image of the
ideal of our desires, or our fears.
Hallucinations, being the dreams of waking persons, {113} always imply a state
analogous to somnambulism. But in a contrary sense; somnambulism is slumber
borrowing its phenomena from waking; hallucination is waking still partially
subjected to the astral intoxication of slumber.
Our fluidic bodies attract and repulse each other following laws similar to
those of electricity. It is this which produces instinctive sympathies and
antipathies. They thus equilibrate each other, and for this reason
hallucinations are often contagious; abnormal projections change the luminous
currents; the perturbation caused by a sick person wins over to itself the more
sensitive natures; a circle of illusions is established, and a whole crowd of
people is easily dragged away thereby. Such is the history of strange
apparitions and popular prodigies. Thus are explained the miracles of the
American mediums and the hysterics of table-turners, who reproduce in our own
times the ecstasies of whirling dervishes. The sorcerers of Lapland with their
magic drums, and the conjurer medicine-men of savages arrive at similar results
by similar proceedings; their gods or their devils have nothing to do with it.
Madmen and idiots are more sensitive to magnetism than people of sound minds; it
should be easy to understand the reason of that: very little is required to turn
completely the head of a drunken man, and one more easily acquires a disease
when all the organs are predisposed to submit to its impressions, and manifest
its disorders.<<WEH NOTE: This predates the general acceptance of the germ
theory of disease.>>
Fluidic maladies have their fatal crises. Every abnormal tension of the nervous
apparatus ends in the contrary tension, according to the necessary laws of
equilibrium. An exaggerated love changes to aversion, and every exalted hate
comes very {114} near to love; the reaction happens suddenly with the flame and
violence of the thunderbolt. Ignorance then laments it or exclaims against it;
science resigns itself, and remains silent.
There are two loves, that of the heart, and that of the head: the love of the
heart never excites itself, it gathers itself together, and grows slowly by the
path of ordeal and sacrifice; purely nervous and passionate cerebral love lives
only on enthusiasm, dashes itself against all duties, treats the beloved object
as a prize of conquest, is selfish, exacting, restless, tyrannical, and is fated
to drag after it either suicide as the final catastrophe, or adultery as a
remedy. These phenomena are constant like nature, inexorable as fatality.
A young artist full of courage, with her future all before her, had a husband,
an honest man, a seeker after knowledge, a poet, whose only fault was an excess
of love for her; she outraged him and left him, and has continued to hate him
ever since. Yet she, too, is a decent woman; the pitiless world, however, judges
and condemns her. And yet, this was not her crime. Her fault, if one may be
permitted to reproach her with one, was that, at first, she madly and
passionately loved her husband.
"But," you will say, "is not the human soul, then, free?" No, it is no longer
free when it has abandoned itself to the giddiness caused by passion. It is only
wisdom which is free; disordered passions are the kingdom of folly, and folly is
fatality.
What we have said of love may equally well be said of religion, which is the
most powerful, but also the most intoxicating, of all loves. Religious passion
has also its excesses {115} and its fatal reactions. One may have ecstasies and
stigmata like St. Francis of Assisi, and fall afterwards into abysses of debauch
and impiety.
Passionate natures are highly charged magnets; they attract or repel with
violence.
It is possible to magnetize in two ways: first, in acting by will upon the
plastic medium of another person, whose will and whose acts are, in consequence,
subordinated to that action.
Secondly, in acting through the will of another, either by intimidation, or by
persuasion, so that the influenced will modifies at our pleasure the plastic
medium and the acts of that person.
One magnetizes by radiation, by contact, by look, or by word.
The vibrations of the voice modify the movement of the astral light, and are a
powerful vehicle of magnetism.
The warm breath magnetizes positively, and the cold breath negatively.
A warm and prolonged insufflation upon the spinal column at the base of the
cerebellum may occasion erotic phenomena.
If one puts the right hand upon the head and the left hand under the feet of a
person completely enveloped with wool or silk, one causes the magnetic spark to
pass completely through the body, and one may thus occasion a nervous revolution
in his organism with the rapidity of lightning.
Magnetic passes only serve to direct the will of the magnetizer in confirming it
by acts. They are signs and nothing more. The act of the will is expressed and
not operated by these signs. {116}
Powdered charcoal absorbs and retains the astral light. This explains the magic
mirror of Dupotet.
Figures traced in charcoal appear luminous to a magnetized person, and take, for
him, following the direction indicated by the will of the magnetizer, the most
gracious or the most terrifying forms.
The astral light, or rather the vital light, of the plastic medium, absorbed by
the charcoal, becomes wholly negative; for this reason animals which are
tormented by electricity, as for example, cats, love to roll themselves upon
coal.<<WEH NOTE: More simply, as a conductor, carbon removes unpleasant static
electricity.>> One day, medicine will make use of this property, and nervous
persons will find great relief from it.
CHAPTER II
LIVE AND DEATH. --- SLEEP AND WAKING
SLEEP is an incomplete death; death is a complete sleep.
Nature subjects us to sleep in order to accustom us to the idea of death, and
warns us by dreams of the persistence of another life.
The astral light into which sleep plunges us is like an ocean in which
innumerable images are afloat, flotsam of wrecked existences, mirages and
reflections of those which pass, presentiments of those which are about to be.
Our nervous disposition attracts to us those images which correspond to our
agitation, to the nature of our fatigue, just as a magnet, moved among particles
of various metals, would attract to itself and choose particularly the iron
filings. {117}
Dreams reveal to us the sickness or the health, the calm or the disturbance, of
our plastic medium, and consequently, also, that of our nervous apparatus.
They formulate our presentiments by the analogy which the images bear to them.
For all ideas have a double significance for us, relating to our double life.
There exists a language of sleep; in the waking state it is impossible to
understand it, or even to order its words.
The language of slumber is that of nature, hieroglyphic in its character, and
rhythmical in its sounds.
Slumber may be either giddy or lucid.
Madness is a permanent state of vertiginous somnambulism.
A violent disturbance may wake madmen to sense, or kill them.
Hallucinations, when they obtain the adhesion of the intelligence, are
transitory attacks of madness.
Every mental fatigue provokes slumber; but if the fatigue is accompanied by
nervous irritation, the slumber may be incomplete, and take on the character of
somnambulism.
One sometimes goes to sleep without knowing it in the midst of real life; and
then instead of thinking, one dreams.
How is it that we remember things which have never happened to us? Because we
dreamt them when wide awake.
This phenomenon of involuntary and unperceived sleep when it suddenly traverses
real life, often happens to those who over-excite their nervous organism by
excesses either of work, vigil, drink, or erethism. {118}
Monomaniacs are asleep when they perform unreasonable acts. They no longer
remember anything on waking.
When Papvoine was arrested by the police, he calmly said to them these
remarkable words: "You are taking the other for me."
It was the somnambulist who was still speaking.
Edgar Poe, that unhappy man of genius who used to intoxicate himself, has
terribly described the somnambulism of monomaniacs. Sometimes it is an assassin
who hears, and who thinks that everybody hears, through the wall of the tomb,
the beating of his victim's heart; sometimes it is a poisoner who, by dint of
saying to himself, "I am safe, provided I do not go and denounce myself," ends
by dreaming aloud that he is denouncing himself, and in fact does so. Edgar Poe
himself invented neither the persons nor the facts of these strange novels; he
dreamt them waking, and that is why he clothed them so well with all the colours
of a shocking reality.
Dr. Briere de Boismont in his remarkable work on "Hallucinations," tells the
story of an Englishman otherwise quite sane, who thought that he had met a
stranger and made his acquaintance, who took him to lunch at his tavern, and
then having asked him to visit St. Paul's in his company, had tried to throw him
from the top of the tower which they had climbed together.<<WEH NOTE: Crowley
elaborated several of these anecdotes into his stories.>>
From that moment the Englishman was obsessed by this stranger, whom he alone
could see, and whom he always met when he was alone, and had dined well.
Precipices attract; drunkenness calls to drunkenness; madness has invincible
charms for madness. When a man {119} succumbs to sleep, he holds in horror
everything which might wake him. It is the same with the hallucinated, with
statical somnambulists, maniacs, epileptics, and all those who abandon
themselves to the delirium of a passion. They have heard the fatal music, they
have entered into the dance of death; and they feel themselves dragged away into
the whirl of vertigo. You speak to them, they no more hear you; you warn them,
they no longer understand you, but your voice annoys them; they are asleep with
the sleep of death.
Death is a current which carries you away, a whirlpool which draws you down, but
from the bottom of which the least movement may make you climb again. The force
or repulsion being equal to that of attraction, at the very moment of expiring,
one often attaches oneself again violent to life. Often also, by the same law of
equilibrium, one passes from sleep to death through complaisance for sleep.
A shallop sways upon the shores of the lake. The child enters the water, which,
shining with a thousand reflections, dances around him and calls him; the chain
which retains the boat stretches and seems to wish to break itself; then a
marvellous bird shoots out from the bank, and skims, singing, upon the joyous
waves; the child wishes to follow it, he puts his hand upon the chain, he
detaches the ring.
Antiquity divined the mystery of the attraction of death, and represented it in
the fable of Hylas. Weary with a long voyage, Hylas has arrived in a flowered,
enamelled isle; he approaches a fountain to draw water; a gracious mirage smiles
at him; he sees a nymph stretch out her arms to him, his own lose nerve, and
cannot draw back the heavy jar; the fresh fragrance of the spring put him to
sleep; the perfumes {120} of the bank intoxicate him. There he is, bent over the
water like a narcissus whose stalk has been broken by a child at play; the full
jar falls to the bottom, and Hylas follows it; he dies, dreaming that nymphs
caress him, and no longer hears the voice of Hercules recalling him to the
labours of life; Hercules, who runs wildly everywhere, crying, "Hylas! Hylas!"
Another fable, not less touching, which steps forth from the shadows of the
Orphic initiation, is that of Eurydice recalled to life by the miracles of
harmony and love, of Eurydice, that sensitive broken on the very day of her
marriage, who takes refuge in the tomb, trembling with modesty. Soon she hears
the lyre of Orpheus, and slowly climbs again towards the light; the terrible
divinities of Erebus dare not bar her passage. She follows the poet, or rather
the poetry which adores. ... But, woe to the lover if he changes the magnetic
current and pursues in his turn, with a single look, her whom he should only
attract! The sacred love, the virginal love, the love which is stronger than the
tomb, seeks only devotion, and flies in terror before the egoism of desire.
Orpheus knows it; but, for an instant, he forgets it. Eurydice, in her white
bridal dress, lies upon the marriage bed; he wears the vestments of Grand
Hierophant, he stands upright, his lyre in his hand, his head crowned with the
sacred laurel, his eyes turned towards the East, and he sings. He sings of the
luminous arrows of love that traverse the shadows of old Chaos, the waves of
soft, clear light, flowing from the black teats of the mother of the gods, from
which hang the two children, Eros and Anteros. He says the song of Adonis
returning to life in answer to the complaint of Venus, reviving like a flower
under the shining dew of her {121} tears; the song of Castor and Pollux, whom
death could not divide, and who love alternately in hell and upon earth. ...
Then he calls softly Eurydice, his dear Eurydice, his so much loved Eurydice:
Ah! miseram Eurydicen anima fugiente vocabat,
Eurydicen! toto referebant flumine ripae.
While he sings, that pallid statue of the sculptor death takes on the colour of
the first tint of life, its white lips begin to redden like the dawn ... Orpheus
sees her, he trembles, he stammers, the hymn almost dies upon his lips, but she
pales anew; then the Grand Hierophant tears from his lyre sublime heartrending
songs, he looks no more save upon Heaven, he weeps, he prays, and Eurydice opens
her eyes ... Unhappy one, do not look at her! sing! sing! do not scare away the
butterfly of Psyche, which is about to alight on this flower! But the insensate
man has seen the look of the woman whom he has raised from the dead, the Grand
Hierophant gives place to the lover, his lyre falls from his hands, he looks
upon Eurydice, he darts towards her, .... he clasps her in his arms, he finds
her frozen still, her eyes are closed again, her lips are paler and colder than
ever, the sensitive soul has trembled, the frail cord is broken anew --- and for
ever. ... Eurydice is dead, and the hymns of Orpheus can no longer recall her to
life!
In our "Dogme et rituel de la haute magie," we had the temerity to say that the
resurrection of the dead is not an impossible phenomenon even on the physical
plane; and in saying that, we have not denied or in any way contradicted the
fatal law of death. A death which can discontinue is only lethargy and slumber;
but it is by lethargy and slumber that {122} death always begins. The state of
profound peace which succeeds the agitations of life carries away the relaxed
and sleeping soul; one cannot make it return, and force it to plunge anew into
life, except by exciting violently all its affections and all its desires. When
Jesus, the Saviour of the world, was upon earth, the earth was more beautiful
and more desirable than Heaven; and yet it was necessary for Jesus to cry aloud
and apply a shock in order to awaken Jairus's daughter. It was by dint of
shudderings and tears that he called back his friend Lazarus from the tomb, so
difficult is it to interrupt a tired soul who is sleeping his beauty-sleep!
At the same time, the countenance of death has not the same serenity for every
soul that contemplates it. When one has missed the goal of life, when one
carries away with one frenzied greeds or unassuaged hates, eternity appears to
the ignorant or guilty soul with such a formidable proportion of sorrows, that
it sometimes tries to fling itself back into mortal life. How many souls, urged
by the nightmare of hell, have taken refuge in their frozen bodies, their bodies
already covered with funereal marble! Men have found skeletons turned over,
convulsed, twisted, and they have said, "Here are men who have been buried
alive." Often this was not the case. These may always be waifs of death, men
raised from the tomb, who, before they could abandon themselves altogether to
the anguish of the threshold of eternity, were obliged to make a second attempt.
A celebrated magnetist, Baron Dupotet, teaches in his secret book on "Magic"
that one can kill by magic as by electricity. There is nothing strange in this
revelation for {123} anyone who is well acquainted with the analogies of Nature.
It is certain that in diluting beyond measure, or in coagulating suddenly, the
plastic medium of a subject, it is possible to loose the body from the soul. It
is sometimes sufficient to arouse a violent anger, or an overmastering fear in
anyone, to kill him suddenly.
The habitual use of magnetism usually puts the subject who abandons himself to
it at the mercy of the magnetizer. When communication is well-established, and
the magnetizer can produce at will slumber, insensibility, catalepsy, and so on,
it will only require a little further effort to bring on death.
We have been told as an actual fact a story whose authenticity we will not
altogether guarantee.
We are about to repeat it because it may be true.
Certain persons who doubted both religion and magnetism, of that incredulous
class which is ready for all superstitions and all fanaticisms, had persuaded a
poor girl to submit to their experiments for a fee. This girl was of an
impressionable and nervous nature, fatigued moreover by the excesses of a life
which had been more than irregular, while she was already disgusted with
existence. They put her to sleep; bade her see; she weeps and struggles. They
speak to her of God; she trembles in every limb.
"No," said she, "no;" He frightens me; I will not look at Him."
"Look at Him, I wish it."
She opens her eyes, her pupils expand; she is terrifying.
"What do you see?"
"I should not know how to say it. ... Oh for pity's sake awaken me!" {124}
"No, look, and say what you see."
"I see a black night in which whirl sparks of every colour around two great
ever-rolling eyes. From these eyes leap rays whose spiral whorls fill space. ...
Ho, it hurts me! Wake me!"
"No, look."
"Where do you wish me to look now?"
"Look into Paradise."
"No, I cannot climb there; the great night pushes me back, I always fall back."
"Very well then, look into hell."
Here the sleep-waker became convulsively agitated.
"No, no!" she cried sobbing; "I will not! I shall be giddy; I should fall! Oh,
hold me back! Hold me back!"
"No, descend."
"Where do you want me to descend?"
"Into hell."
"But it is horrible! No! No! I will not go there!"
"Go there."
"Mercy!"
"Go there. It is my will."
The features of the sleep-waker become terrible to behold; her hair stands on
end; her wide-opened eyes show only the white; her breast heaves, and a sort of
death-rattle escapes from her throat.
"Go there. It is my will," repeats the magnetizer.
"I am there!" says the unhappy girl between her teeth, falling back exhausted.
Then she no longer answers; her head hangs heavy on her shoulder; her arms fall
idly by her side. They approach her. They touch her. They try to {125} waken
her, but it is too late; the crime was accomplished; the woman was dead. It was
to the public incredulity in the matter of magnetism that the authors of this
sacrilegious experiment owed their own immunity from prosecution. The
authorities held an inquest, and death was attributed to the rupture of an
aneurism. The body, anyhow, bore no trace of violence; they had it buried, and
there was an end of the matter.
Here is another anecdote which we heard from a travelling companion.
Two friends were staying in the same inn, and sharing the same room. One of them
had a habit of talking in his sleep, and, at that time, would answer the
questions which his comrade put to him. One night, he suddenly uttered stifled
cries; his companion woke up and asked him what was the matter.
"But, don't you see," said the sleeper, "don't you see that enormous stone ...
it is becoming loose from the mountain ... it is falling on me, it is going to
crush me."
"Oh, well, get out of its way!"
"Impossible! My feet are caught in brambles that cling ever closer. Ah! Help!
Help! There is the great stone coming right upon me!"
"Well, there it is!" said the other laughing, throwing the pillow at his head in
order to wake him.
A terrible cry, suddenly strangled in his throat, a convulsion, a sigh, then
nothing more. The practical joker gets up, pulls his comrade's arm, calls him;
in his turn, he becomes frightened, he cries out, people come with lights ...
the unfortunate sleep-waker was dead. {126}
CHAPTER III
MYSTERIES OF HALLUCINATIONS AND OF THE EVOCATION OF SPIRITS
AN hallucination is an illusion produced by an irregular movement of the astral
light.
It is, as we said previously, the admixture of the phenomena of sleep with those
of waking.
Our plastic medium breathes in and out the astral light or vital soul of the
earth, as our body breathes in and out the terrestrial atmosphere. Now, just as
in certain places the air is impure and not fit for breathing, in the same way,
certain unusual circumstances may make the astral light unwholesome, and not
assimilable.
The air of some places may be too bracing for some people, and suit others
perfectly; it is exactly the same with the magnetic light.
The plastic medium is like a metallic statue always in a state of fusion. If the
mould is defective, it becomes deformed; if the mould breaks, it runs out.
The mould of the plastic medium is balanced and polarized vital force. Our body,
by means of the nervous system, attracts and retains this fugitive form of
light; but local fatigue, or partial over-excitement of the apparatus, may
occasion fluidic deformities.
These deformities partially falsify the mirror of the imagination, and thus
occasion habitual hallucinations to the static type of visionary.
The plastic medium, made in the image and likeness of our {127} body, of which
it figures every organ in light, has a sight, touch, hearing, smell and taste
which are proper to itself; it may, when it is over-excited, communicate them by
vibrations to the nervous apparatus in such a manner that the hallucination is
complete. The imagination seems then to triumph over Nature itself, and produces
truly strange phenomena. The material body, deluged with fluid, seems to
participate in the fluidic qualities, it escapes from the operation of the laws
of gravity, becomes momentarily invulnerable, and even invisible, in a circle of
persons suffering from collective hallucination. The convulsionaries of St.
Medard, as one knows, had their flesh torn off with red-hot pincers, had
themselves felled like oxen, and ground like corn, and crucified, without
suffering any pain; they were levitated, walked about head downwards, and ate
bent pins and digested them.
We think we ought to recapitulate here the remarks which we published in the
"Estafette" on the prodigies produced by the American medium Home, and on
several phenomena of the same kind.
We have never personally witnessed Mr. Home's miracles, but our information
comes from the best sources; we gathered it in a house where the American medium
had been received with kindness when he was in misfortune, and with indulgence
when he reached the point of thinking that his illness was a piece of good luck;
in the house of a lady born in Poland, but thrice French by the nobility of her
heart, the indescribable charm of her spirit, and the European celebrity of her
name.
The publication of this information in the "Estafette" attracted to us at that
time, without our particularly knowing {128} why, the insults of a Mr. de Pene,
since then become known to fame through his unfortunate duel. We thought at the
time of La Fontaine's fable about the fool who threw stones at the sage. Mr. de
Pene spoke of us as an unfrocked priest, and a bad Catholic. We at least showed
ourself a good Christian in pitying and forgiving him, and as it is impossible
to be an unfrocked priest without ever having been a priest, we let fall to the
ground an insult which did not reach us.
SPOOKS IN PARIS.
Mr. Home, a week ago, was once more about to quit Paris, that Paris where even
the angels and the demons, if they appeared in any shape, would not pass very
long for marvellous beings, and would find nothing better to do than to return
at top-speed to heaven or to hell, to escape the forgetfulness and the neglect
of human kind.
Mr. Home, his air sad and disillusioned, was then bidding farewell to a noble
lady whose kindly welcome had been one of the first happiness which he had
tasted in France. Mme. de B... treated him very kindly that day, as always, and
asked him to stay to dinner; the man of mystery was about to accept, when, some
one having just said that they were waiting for a qabalist, well known in the
world of occult science by the publication of a book entitled "Dogme et rituel
de la haute magie," Mr. Home suddenly changed countenance, and said, stammering,
and with a visible embarrassment, that he could not remain, and that the
approach of this Professor of Magic caused him an incomparable terror.
Everything one could say to reassure him proved useless. "I do not presume to
judge the man," said he; "I do not {129} assert that he is good or evil, I know
nothing about it; but his atmosphere hurts me; near him I should feel myself, as
it were, without force, even without life." After which explanation. Mr. Home
hastened to salute and withdraw.
This terror of miracle-mongers in the presence of the veritable initiates of
science, is not a new fact in the annals of occultism. You may read in
Philostratus the history of the Lamia who trembles on hearing the approach of
Apollonius of Tyana. Our admirable story-teller Alexander Dumas dramatized this
magical anecdote in the magnificent epitome of all legends which forms the
prologue to his great epic novel, "The Wandering Jew."<<Some authorities
attribute this novel to Eugene Sue. --- TRANS.>> The scene takes place at
Corinth; it is an old-time wedding with its beautiful children crowned with
flowers, bearing the nuptial torches, and singing gracious epithalamia flowered
with voluptuous images like the poems of Catullus. The bride is as beautiful in
her chaste draperies as the ancient Polyhumnia; she is amorous and deliciously
provoking in her modesty, like a Venus of Correggio, or a Grace of Canova. The
bridegroom is Clinias, a disciple of the famous Apollonius of Tyana. The master
had promised to come to his disciple's wedding, but he does not arrive, and the
fair bride breathes easier, for she fears Apollonius. However, the day is not
over. The hour has arrived when the newly married are to be conducted to the
nuptial couch. Meroe trembles, pales, looks obstinately towards the door,
stretches out her hand with alarm and says in a strangled voice: "Here he is! It
is he!" It was in fact Apollonius. Here is the magus; here is the master; the
hour of enchantments has passed; jugglery falls before true {130} science. One
seeks the lovely bride, the white Meroe, and one sees no more than an old woman,
the sorceress Canidia, the devourer of little children. Clinias is disabused; he
thanks his master, he is saved.
The vulgar are always deceived about magic, and confuse adepts with enchanters.
True magic, that is to say, the traditional science of the magi, is the mortal
enemy of enchantment; it prevents, or makes to cease, sham miracles, hostile to
the light, that fascinate a small number of prejudiced or credulous witnesses.
The apparent disorder in the laws of Nature is a lie: it is not then a miracle.
The true miracle, the true prodigy always flaming in the eyes of all, is the
ever constant harmony of effect and cause; these are the splendours of eternal
order!
We could not say whether Cagliostro would have performed miracles in the
presence of Swedenborg; but he would certainly have dreaded the presence of
Paracelsus and of Henry Khunrath, if these great men had been his
contemporaries.
Far be it from us, however, to denounce Mr. Home as a low-class sorcerer, that
is to say, as a charlatan. The celebrated American medium is sweet and natural
as a child. He is a poor and over-sensitive being, without cunning and without
defence; he is the plaything of a terrible force of whose nature he is ignorant,
and the first of his dupes is certainly himself.
The study of the strange phenomena which are produced in the neighbourhood of
this young man is of the greatest importance. One must seriously reconsider the
too easy denials of the eighteenth century, and open out before {131} science
and reason broader horizons than those of a bourgeois criticism, which denies
everything which it does not yet know how to explain to itself. Facts are
inexorable, and genuine good faith should never fear to examine them.
The explanation of these facts, which all traditions obstinately affirm, and
which are reproduced before our eyes with tiresome publicity, this explanation,
ancient as the facts themselves, rigorous as mathematics, but drawn for the
first time from the shadows in which the hierophants of all ages have hidden it,
would be a great scientific event if it could obtain sufficient light and
publicity. This event we are perhaps about to prepare, for one would not permit
us the audacious hope of accomplishing it.
Here, in the first place, are the facts, in all their singularity. We have
verified them, and we have established them with a rigorous exactitude,
abstaining in the first place from all explanation and all commentary.
Mr. Home is subject to trances which put him, according to his own account, in
direct communication with the soul of his mother, and, through her, with the
entire world of spirits. He describes, like the sleep-wakers of Cahagnet,
persons whom he has never seen, and who are recognized by those who evoke them;
he will tell you even their names, and will reply, on their behalf, to questions
which can be understood only by the soul evoked and yourselves.
When he is in a room, inexplicable noises make themselves heard. Violent blows
resound upon the furniture, and in the walls; sometimes doors and windows open
by themselves, as if they were blown open by a storm; one even hears the wind
and the rain, though when one goes out of doors, the sky {132} is cloudless, and
one does not feel the lightest breath of wind.
The furniture is overturned and displace, without anybody touching it.
Pencils write of their own accord. Their writing is that of Mr. Home, and they
make the same mistakes as he does.
Those present feel themselves touched and seized by invisible hands. These
contacts, which seem to select ladies, lack a serious side, and sometimes even
propriety. We think that we shall be sufficiently understood.
Visible and tangible hands come out, or seem to come out, of tables; but in this
case, the tables must be covered. The invisible agent needs certain apparatus,
just as do the cleverest successors of Robert Houdin.
These hands show themselves above all in darkness; they are warm and
phosphorescent, or cold and black. They write stupidities, or touch the piano;
and when they have touched the piano, it is necessary to send for the tuner,
their contact being always fatal to the exactitude of the instrument.
One of the most considerable personages in England, Sir Bulwer Lytton, has seen
and touched those hands; we have read his written and signed attestation. He
declares even that he has seized them, and drawn them towards himself with all
his strength, in order to withdraw from their incognito the arm to which they
should naturally be attached. But the invisible object has proved stronger than
the English novelist, and the hands have escaped him.
A Russian nobleman who was the protector of Mr. Home, and whose character and
good faith could not possibly be doubted, Count A. B------, has also seen and
seized with {133} vigor the mysterious hands. "They are," says he, "perfect
shapes of human hands, warm and living, only one feels no bones." Pressed by an
unavoidable constraint, those hands did not struggle to escape, but grew
smaller, and in some way melted, so that the Count ended by no longer holding
anything.
Other persons who have seen them, and touched them, say that the fingers are
puffed out and stiff, and compare them to gloves of india-rubber, swollen with a
warm and phosphorescent air. Sometimes, instead of hands, it is feet which
produce themselves, but never naked. The spirit, which probably lacks footwear,
respects (at least in this particular) the delicacy of ladies, and never shows
his feet but under a drapery or a cloth.
The production of these feet very much tires and frightens Mr. Home. He then
endeavours to approach some healthy person, and seizes him like a drowning man;
the person so seized by the medium feels himself, on a sudden, in a singular
state of exhaustion and debility.
A Polish gentleman, who was present at one of the "seances" of Mr. Home, had
placed on the ground between his feet a pencil on a paper, and had asked for a
sign of the presence of the spirit. For some instants nothing stirred, but
suddenly, the pencil was thrown to the other end of the room. The gentleman
stooped, took the paper, and saw there three qabalistic signs which nobody
understood. Mr. Home (alone) appeared, on seeing them, to be very much upset,
and even frightened; but he refused to explain himself as to the nature and
significance of these characters. The investigators accordingly kept them, and
took them to that Professor of High {134} Magic whose approach had been so much
dreaded by the medium. We have seen them, and here is a minute description of
them.
They were traced forcibly, and the pencil had almost cut the paper.
They had been dashed on to the paper without order or alignment.
The first was the symbol which the Egyptian initiates usually placed in the hand
of Typhon. A tau with upright double lines opened in the form of a compass; an
ankh (or crux ansata) having at the top a circular ring; below the ring, a
double horizontal line; beneath the double horizontal line, two oblique lines,
like a V upside down.
The second character represented a Grand Hierophant's cross, with the three
hierarchical cross-bars. This symbol, which dates from the remotest antiquity,
is still the attribute of our sovereign pontiffs, and forms the upper extremity
of their pastoral staff. But the sign traced by the pencil had this
particularity, that the upper branch, the head of the cross, was double, and
formed again the terrible Typhonian V, the sign of antagonism and separation,
the symbol of hate and eternal combat.
The third character was that which Freemasons call the Philosophical Cross, a
cross with four equal arms, with a point in each of its angles. But, instead of
four points, there were only two, placed in the two right-hand corners, once
more a sign of struggle, separation and denial.
The Professor, whom one will allow us to distinguish from the narrator, and to
name in the third person in order not to weary our readers in having the air of
speaking of {135} ourself --- the Professor, then, Master Eliphas Levi, gave the
persons assembled in Mme. de B------'s drawing-room the scientific explanation
of the three signatures, and this is what he said:
"These three signs belong to the series of sacred and primitive hieroglyphs,
known only to initiates of the first order. The first is the signature of
Typhon. It expresses the blasphemy of the evil spirit by establishing dualism in
the creative principle. For the crux ansata of Osiris is a lingam upside down,
and represents the paternal and active force of God (the vertical line extending
from the circle) fertilizing passive nature (the horizontal line). To double the
vertical line is to affirm that nature has two fathers; it is to put adultery in
the place of the divine motherhood, it is to affirm, instead of the principle of
intelligence, blind fatality, which has for result the eternal conflict of
appearances in nothingness; it is, then, the most ancient, the most authentic,
and the most terrible of all the stigmata of hell. It signifies the "atheistic
god"; it is the signature of Satan.
"This first signature is hieratical, and bears reference to the occult
characters of the divine world.
"The second pertains to philosophical hieroglyphs, it represents the graduated
extent of idea, and the progressive extension of form.
"It is a triple tau upside down; it is human thought affirming the absolute in
the three worlds, and that absolute ends here by a fork, that is to say, by the
sign of doubt and antagonism. So that, if the first character means: 'There is
no God,' the rigorous signification of this one is: 'Hierarchical truth does not
exist.' {136}
"The third or philosophical cross has been in all initiations the symbol of
Nature, and its four elementary forms. The four points represent the four
indicible an incommunicable letters of the occult tetragram, that eternal
formula of the Great Arcanum, G.'. A.'.
"The two points on the right represent force, as those on the left symbolize
love, and the four letters should be read from right to left, beginning by the
right-hand upper corner, and going thence to the left-hand lower corner, and so
for the others, making the cross of St. Andrew.
"The suppression of the two left-hand points expresses the negation of the
cross, the negation of mercy and of love.
"The affirmation of the absolute reign of force, and its eternal antagonism,
from above to beneath, and from beneath to above.
"The glorification of tyranny and of revolt.
"The hieroglyphic sign of the unclean rite, with which, rightly or wrongly, the
Templars were reproached; it is the sign of disorder and of eternal despair."
Such, then, are the first revelations of the hidden science of the magi with
regard to these phenomena of supernatural manifestations. Now let it be
permitted to us to compare with these strange signatures other contemporary
apparitions of phenomenal writings, for it is really a brief which science ought
to study before taking it to the tribunal of public opinion. One must then
despise no research, overlook no clue.
In the neighbourhood of Caen, at Tilly-sur-Seulles, a series of inexplicable
facts occurred some years ago, under the influence of a medium, or ecstatic,
named Eugene Vintras. {137}
Certain ridiculous circumstances and a prosecution for swindling soon caused
this thaumaturgist to fall into oblivion, and even into contempt; he had,
moreover, been attacked with violence in pamphlets whose authors had at one time
been admirers of his doctrine, for the medium Vintras took it upon himself to
dogmatize. One thing, however, is remarkable in the invectives of which he is
the object: his adversaries, though straining every effort in order to scourge
him, recognize the truth of his miracles, and content themselves with
attributing them to the devil.
What, then, are these so authentic miracles of Vintras? On this subject we are
better informed than anybody, as will soon appear. Affidavits signed by
honourable witnesses, persons who are artists, doctors, priests, all men above
reproach, have been communicated to us; we have questioned eye-witnesses, and,
better than that, we have seen with our own eyes. The facts deserve to be
described in detail.
There is in Paris a writer named Mr. Madrolle, who is, to say the least of it, a
bit eccentric. He is an old man of good family. He wrote at first on behalf of
Catholicism in the most exalted way, received most flattering encouragements
from ecclesiastical authority, and even letters from the Holy See. Then he saw
Vintras; and, led away by the prestige of his miracles, became a determined
sectarian, and an irreconcilable enemy of the hierarchy and of the clergy.
At the period when Eliphas Levi was publishing his "Dogme et rituel de la haute
magie," he received a pamphlet from Mr. Madrolle which astonished him. In it,
the author vigorously sustained the most unheard of paradoxes in the disordered
style of the ecstatics. For him, life sufficed for {138} the expiation of the
greatest crimes, since it was the consequence of a sentence of death. The most
wicked men, being the most unhappy of all, seemed to him to offer the sublimest
of expiations to God. He broke all bounds in his attack on all repression and
all damnation. "A religion which damns," he cried, "is a damned religion!" He
further preached the most absolute licence under the pretext of charity, and so
far forgot himself as to say, that "the most imperfect and the most apparently
reprehensible act of love was worth more than the best of prayers."<<Quoted with
approval in solution of the First Problem, IX, p. 52. --- O. M. It is difficult
to determine whether the words 'act of love' should be interpreted in their
gross, or in their mystical, sense. Perhaps Madrolle was himself intentionally
ambiguous. --- TRANS.>> It was the Marquis de Sade turned preacher!<<But the
Marquis de Sade was, above all, a preacher. Three-fourths of "Justine" are
verbose arguments in favour of so-called vice. Again Levi trips in referring to
an author whom he has not read. --- TRANS.>> Further, he denied the existence of
the devil with an enthusiasm often full of eloquence.
"Can you conceive," said he, "a devil tolerated and authorized by God? Can you
conceive, further, a God who made the devil, and who allowed him to ravage
creatures already so weak, and so prompt to deceive themselves! A god of the
devil, in short, abetted, protected, and scarcely surpassed in his revenges, by
a devil of a god!" The rest of the pamphlet was of the same vigour. The
Professor of Magic was almost frightened, and inquired the address of Mr.
Madrolle. It was not without some trouble that he obtained an interview with
this singular pamphleteer, and here is, more or less, their conversation:
ELIPHAS LEVI. "Sir, I have received a pamphlet from you. {139} I am come to
thank you for your gift, and, at the same time, to testify to my astonishment
and disappointment."
MR. MADROLLE. "Your disappointment, sir! Pray explain yourself, I do not
understand you."
"It is a lively regret to me, sir, to see you make mistakes which I have myself
at one time made. But I had then, at least, the excuse of inexperience and
youth. Your pamphlet lacks conviction, because it lacks discrimination. Your
intention was doubtless to protest against errors in belief, and abuses in
morality: and behold, it is the belief and the morality themselves that you
attack! The exaltation which overflows in your pamphlet may indeed do you the
greatest harm, and some of your best friends must have experienced anxiety with
regard to the state of your health. ..."
"Oh, no doubt; they have said, and say still, that I am mad. But it is nothing
new that believers must undergo the folly of the cross. I am exalted, sir,
because you yourself would be so in my place, because it is impossible to remain
calm in the presence of prodigies. ..."
"Oh, oh, you speak of prodigies, that interests me. Come, between ourselves, and
in all good faith, of what prodigies are you speaking?"
"Eh, what prodigies should they be but those of the great prophet Elias,
returned to earth under the name of Pierre Michel?"
"I understand; you mean Eugene Vintras. I have heard his prophecies spoken of.
But does he really perform miracles?"
["Here Mr. Madrolle jumps in his chair, raises his eyes and his hands to heaven,
and finally smiles with a condescension which seems to sound the depths of
pity."] {140}
"Does he do miracles, sir?
"But the greatest!
"The most astonishing!
"The most incontestable!
"The truest miracles that have ever been done on earth since the time of Jesus
Christ! ... What! Thousands of hosts appear on altars where there were none;
wine appears in empty chalices, and it is not an illusion, it is wine, a
delicious wine ....celestial music is heard, perfumes of the world beyond fill
the room, and then blood .... real human blood (doctors have examined it!), real
blood, I tell you, sweats and sometimes flows from the hosts, imprinting
mysterious characters on the altars! I am talking to you of what I have seen, of
what I have heard, of what I have touched, of what I have tasted! And you want
me to remain cold at the bidding of an ecclesiastical authority which finds it
more convenient to deny everything than to examine the least thing!..."
"By permission, sir; it is in religious matters, above all, that authority can
never by wrong. ... In religion, good is hierarchy, and evil is anarchy; to what
would the influence of the priesthood be reduced, in effect, if you set up the
principle that one must rather believe the testimony of one's senses than the
decision of the Church? Is not the Church more visible than all your miracles?
Those who see miracles and who do not see the Church are much more to be pitied
than the blind, for there remains to them not even the resource of allowing
themselves to be led. ..."
"Sir, I know all that as well as you do. But God cannot be divided against
Himself. He cannot allow good faith to be deceived, and the Church itself could
hardly decide that {141} I am blind when I have eyes. ... Here, see what John
Huss says in his letter, the forty-third letter, towards the end:
"'A doctor of theology said to me: "In everything I should submit myself to the
Council; everything would then be good and lawful for me." He added: "If the
Council said that you had only one eye, although you have two, it would be still
necessary to admit that the Council was not wrong." "Were the whole world," I
replied, "to affirm such a thing, so long as I had the use of my reason, I
should not be able to agree without wounding my conscience."' I will say to you,
like John Huss, 'Before there were a Church and its councils there were truth
and reason.'"
"Pardon me if I interrupt, my dear sir; you were a Catholic at one time, you are
no longer so; consciences are free. I shall merely submit to you that the
institution of the hierarchical infallibility in matters of dogma is reasonable
in quite another sense, and far more incontestably true than all the miracles of
the world. Besides, what sacrifices ought one not to make in order to preserve
peace! Believe me, John Huss would have been a greater man if he had sacrificed
one of his eyes to universal concord, rather than deluge Europe with blood! O
sir! let the Church decide when she will that I have but one eye; I only ask her
one favour, it is to tell me in which eye I am blind, in order that I may close
it and look with the other with an irreproachable orthodoxy!"
"I admit that I am not orthodox in your fashion."
"I perceive that clearly. But let us come to the miracles! You have then seen,
touched, felt, tasted them; but, come, putting exaltation on one side, please
give me a thoroughly detailed and circumstantial account of the affair, and,
above {142} all, evident proof of miracle. Am I indiscreet in asking you that?"
"Not the least in the world; but which shall I choose? There are so many!"
"Let me think," added Mr. Madrolle, after a moment's reflection and with a
slight trembling in the voice, "the prophet is in London, and we are here. Eh!
well, if you only make a mental request to the prophet to send you immediately
the communion, and if in a place designated by you, in your own house, in a
cloth, or in a book, you found a host on your return, what would you say?"
"I should declare the fact inexplicable by ordinary critical rules."
"Oh, well, sir," cried Mr. Madrolle, triumphantly, "there is a thing that often
happens to me; whenever I wish, that is to say, whenever I am prepared and hope
humbly to be worthy of it! Yes, sir, I find the host when I ask for it; I find
it real and palpable, but often ornamented with little hearts, little miraculous
hearts, which one might think had been painted by Raphael."
Eliphas Levi, who felt ill at ease in discussing facts with which there was
mingled a sort of profanation of the most holy things, then took his leave of
the one-time Catholic writer, and went out meditating on the strange influence
of this Vintras, who had so overthrown that old belief, and turned the old
savant's head.
Some days afterwards, the qabalist Eliphas was awakened very early in the
morning by an unknown visitor. It was a man with white hair, entirely clothed in
black; his physiognomy {143} that of an extremely devout priest; his whole air,
in short, was entirely worthy of respect.
This ecclesiastic was furnished with a letter of recommendation conceived in
these terms:
"DEAR MASTER,
"This is to introduce to you an old savant, who wants to gabble Hebrew sorcery
with you. Receive him like myself --- I mean as I myself received him --- by
getting rid of him in the best way you can.
"Entirely yours, in the sacrosanct Qabalah,
"AD. DESBARROLLES."
"Reverend sir," said Eliphas, smiling, after having read the letter. "I am
entirely at your service, and can refuse nothing to the friend who writes to me.
You have then seen my excellent disciple Desbarrolles?"
"Yes, sir, and I have found in him a very amiable and very learned man. I think
both you and him worthy of the truth which has been lately revealed by
astonishing miracles, and the positive revelations of the Archangel St.
Michael."
"Sir, you do us honour. Has then the good Desbarrolles astonished you by his
science?"
"Oh, certainly he possesses in a very remarkable degree the secrets of
cheiromancy; by merely inspecting my hand, he told me nearly the whole history
of my life."
"He is quite capable of that. But did he enter into the smallest details?"
"Sufficiently, sir, to convince me of his extraordinary power."
"Did he tell you that you were once the vicar of {144} Mont-Louis, in the
diocese of Tours? That you are the most zealous disciple of the ecstatic Eugene
Vintras? And that your name is Charvoz?"
It was a veritable thunderbolt; at each of these three phrases the old priest
jumped in his chair. When he heard his name, he turned pale, and rose as if a
spring had been released.
"You are then really a magician?" he cried; "Charvoz is certainly my name, but
it is not that which I bear; I call myself La Paraz."
"I know it; La Paraz is the name of your mother. You have left a sufficiently
enviable position, that of a country vicar, and your charming vicarage, in order
to share the troubled existence of a sectary."
"Say of a great prophet!"
"Sir, I believe perfectly in your good faith. But you will permit me to examine
a little the mission and the character of your prophet."
"Yes, sir; examination, full light, the microscope of science, that is all we
ask. Come to London, sir, and you will see! The miracles are permanently
established there."
"Would you be so kind, sir, as to give me, first of all, some exact and
conscientious details with regard to the miracles?"
"Oh, as many as you like!"
And immediately the old priest began to recount things which the whole world
would have found impossible, but which did not even turn a eye-lash of the
Professor of Transcendental Magic. {145}
Here is one of his stories:
One day Vintras, in an access of enthusiasm, was preaching before his heterodox
altar; twenty-five persons were present. An empty chalice was upon the altar, a
chalice well known to the Abbe Charvoz; he brought it himself from his church of
Mont-Louis, and he was perfectly certain that the sacred vase had neither secret
ducts nor double bottom.
"'In order to prove to you,' said Vintras, 'that it is God Himself who inspires
me, He acquaints me that this chalice will fill itself with drops of His blood,
under the appearance of wine, and you will all be able to taste the fruit of the
vines of the future, the wine which we shall drink with the Saviour in the
Kingdom of His Father...'
"Overcome with astonishment and fear," continued the Abbe Charvoz, "I go up to
the altar, I take the chalice, I look at the bottom of it: it was entirely
empty. I overturned it in the sight of everyone, then I returned to kneel at the
foot of the altar, holding the chalice between my two hands... Suddenly there
was a slight noise; the noise of a drop of water, falling into the chalice from
the ceiling, was distinctly heard, and a drop of wine appeared at the bottom of
the vase.
"Every eye was fixed on me. Then they looked at the ceiling, for our simple
chapel was held in a poor room; in the ceiling was neither hole nor fissure;
nothing was seen to fall, and yet the noise of the fall of the drops multiplied,
it became more rapid, and more frequent, .. and the wine climbed from the bottom
of the chalice towards the brim.
"When the chalice was full, I bore it slowly around so that all might see it;
then the prophet dipped his lips into it, and all, one after the other, tasted
the miraculous wine. It is in {146} vain to search memory for any delicious
taste which would gave an idea of it... And what shall I tell you," added the
Abbe Charvoz, "of those miracles of blood which astonish us every day? Thousands
of wounded and bleeding hosts are found upon our altars. The sacred stigmata
appear to all who wish to see them. The hosts, at first white, slowly become
marked with characters and hearts in blood. ... Must one believe that God
abandons the holiest objects to the false miracles of the devil? Should not one
rather adore, and believe that the hour of the supreme and final revelation has
arrived?"
Abbe Charvoz, as he thus spoke, had in his voice that sort of nervous trembling
that Eliphas Levi had already noticed in the case of Mr. Madrolle. The magician
shook his head pensively; then, suddenly:
"Sir," said he to the Abbe; "you have upon you one or two of these miraculous
hosts. Be good enough to show them to me."
"Sir------"
"You have some, I know it; why should you deny it?"
"I do not deny it," said Abbe Charvoz; "but you will permit me not to expose to
the investigations of incredulity objects of the most sincere and devout
belief."
"Reverend sir," said Eliphas gravely; "incredulity is the mistrust of an
ignorance almost sure to deceive itself. Science is not incredulous. I believe,
to begin with, in you own conviction, since you have accepted a life of
privation and even of reproach, in order to stick to this unhappy belief. Show
me then your miraculous hosts, and believe entirely in my respect for the
objects of a sincere worship." {147}
"Oh, well!" said the Abbe Charvoz, after another slight hesitation; "I will show
them to you."
Then he unbuttoned the top of his black waistcoat and drew forth a little
reliquary of silver, before which he fell on his knees, with tears in his eyes,
and prayers on his lips; Eliphas fell on his knees beside him, and the Abbe
opened the reliquary.
There were in the reliquary three hosts, one whole, the two others almost like
paste, and as it were kneaded with blood.
The whole host bore in its centre a heart in relief on both sides; a clot of
blood moulded in the form of a heart, which seemed to have been formed in the
host itself in an inexplicable manner. The blood could not have been applied
from without, for the imbibed colouring matter had left the particles adhering
to the exterior surface quite white. The appearance of the phenomenon was the
same on both sides. The Master of Magic was seized with an involuntary
trembling.
This emotion did not escape the old vicar, who having once again done adoration
and closed his reliquary, drew from his pocket an album, and gave it without a
word to Eliphas. ... There were copies of all the bleeding characters which had
been observed upon hosts since the beginning of the ecstasies and miracles of
Vintras.
There were hearts of every kind, and many different sorts of emblems. But three
especially excited the curiosity of Eliphas to the highest point.
"Reverend sir," said he to Charvoz, "do you know these three signs?"
"No," replied the Abbe ingenuously; "but the prophet assures us that they are of
the highest importance, and that {148} their hidden signification shall soon be
made known, that is to say, at the end of the Age."
"Oh, well, sir," solemnly replied the Professor of Magic; "even before the end
of the Age, I will explain them to you; these three qabalistic signs are the
signature of the devil!"
"It is impossible!" cried the old priest.
"It is the case," replied Eliphas, with determination.
Now, the signs were these:
1 Degree. --- The star of the micrososm, or the magic pentagram. It is the
five-pointed star of occult masonry, the star with which Agrippa drew the human
figure, the head in the upper point, the four limbs in the four others. The
flaming star, which, when turned upside down, is the hierolgyphic sign of the
goat of Black Magic, whose head may then be drawn in the star, the two horns at
the top, the ears to the right and left, the beard at the bottom. It is the sign
of antagonism and fatality. It is the goat of lust attacking the heavens with
its horns. It is a sign execrated by initiates of a superior rank, even at the
Sabbath.<<But if this were on a circular host, how could it be upside down? ---
O. M.>>
2 Degree. --- The two hermetic serpents. But the heads and tails, instead of
coming together in two similar semicircles, were turned outwards, and there was
no intermediate line representing the caduceus. Above the head of the serpents,
one saw the fatal V, the Typhonian fork, the character of hell. To the right and
left, the sacred numbers III and VII were relegated to the horizontal line which
represents passive and secondary things. The meaning of the character was then
this:
Antagonism is eternal. {149}
God is the strife of fatal forces, which always create through destruction.
The things of religion are passive and transitory.
Boldness makes use of them, war profits by them, and it is by them that discord
is perpetuated.
3 Degree. --- Finally, the qabalistic monogram of Jehovah, the JOD and the HE,
but upside down. This is, according to the doctors of occult science, the most
frightful of all blasphemies, and signifies, however one may read it, "Fatality
alone exists: God and the Spirit are not. Matter is all, and spirit is only a
fiction of this matter demented. Form is more than idea, woman more than man,
pleasure more than thought, vice more than virtue, the mob more than its chiefs,
the children more than their fathers, folly more than reason!"
There is what was written in characters of blood upon the pretended miraculous
hosts of Vintras!
We affirm upon our honour that the facts cited above are such as we have stated,
and that we ourselves saw and explained the characters according to magical
science and the true keys of the Qabalah.
The disciple of Vintras also communicated to us the description and design of
the pontifical vestments given, said he, by Jesus Christ Himself to the
pretended prophet, during one of his ecstatic trances. Vintras had these
vestments made, and clothes himself with them in order to perform his miracles.
They are red in colour. He wears upon his forehead a cross in the form of a
lingam; and his pastoral staff is surmounted by a hand, all of whose fingers are
closed, except the thumb and the little finger.
Now, all that is diabolical in the highest degree. And is {150} it not a really
wonderful thing, this intuition of the signs of a lost science? For it is
transcendental magic which, basing the universe upon the two columns of Hermes
and of Solomon, has divided the metaphysical world into two intellectual zones,
one white and luminous, enclosing positive ideas, the other black and obscure,
containing negative ideas, and which has given to the synthesis of the first,
the name of God, and to that of the other, the name of the devil or of Satan.
The sign of the lingam borne upon the forehead is in India the distinguishing
mark of the worshippers of Shiva the destroyer; for that sign being that of the
great magical arcanum, which refers to the mystery of universal generation, to
bear it on the forehead is to make profession of dogmatic shamelessness. "Now,"
say the Orientals, "the day when there is no longer modesty in the world, the
world, given over to debauch which is sterile, will end at once for lack of
mothers. Modesty is the acceptance of maternity."
The hand with the three large fingers closed expresses the negation of the
ternary, and the affirmation of the natural forces alone.
The ancient hierophants, as our learned and witty friend Desbarolles is about to
explain in an admirable book which is at present in the press, had given a
complete "resume" of magical science in the human hand. The forefinger, for
them, represented Jupiter; the middle finger, Saturn; the ring-finger, Apollo or
the Sun. Among the Egyptians, the middle finger was Ops, the forefinger Osiris,
and the little finger Horus; the thumb represented the generative force,and the
little finger, cunning. A hand, showing only the thumb and {151} the little
finger, is equivalent, in the sacred hieroglyphic language, to the exclusive
affirmation of passion and diplomacy. It is the perverted and material
translation of that great word of St. Augustine: "Love, and do what you will!"
Compare now this sign with the doctrine of Mr. Madrolle: "The most imperfect and
the most apparently guilty act of love is worth more than the best of prayers."
And you will ask yourself what is that force which, independently of the will,
and of the greater or less knowledge of man (for Vintras is a man of no
education), formulates its dogmas with signs buried in the rubbish of the
ancient world, re-discovers the mysteries of Thebes and of Eleusis, and writes
for us the most learned reveries of India with the occult alphabets of Hermes?
What is that force? I will tell you. But I have still plenty of other miracles
to tell; and this article is like a judicial investigation. We must, before
anything else, complete it.
However, we may be permitted, before proceeding to other accounts to transcribe
here a page from a German "illumine," of the work of Ludwig Tieck:
"If, for example, as an ancient tradition informs us, some of the angels whom
God had created fell all too soon, and if these, as they also say, were
precisely the most brilliant of the angels, one may very well understand by this
'fall' that they sought a new road, a new form of activity, other occupations,
and another life than those orthodox or more passive spirits who remained in the
realm assigned to them, and made no use of liberty, the appanage of all of them.
Their 'fall' was that weight of form which we now-a-days call reality, and which
is a protest on the part of individual existence against {152} its reabsorption
into the abysses of universal spirit. It is thus that death preserves and
reproduces life, it is thus that life is betrothed to death. ... Do you
understand now what Lucifer is? "Is it not the very genius of ancient
Prometheus," that force which sets in motion the world, life, even movement, and
which regulates the course of successive forms? This force, by its resistance,
equilibrated the creative principle. It is thus that the Elohim gave birth to
the earth. When, subsequently, men were placed upon the earth by the Lord, as
intermediate spirits, in their enthusiasm, which led them to search Nature in
its depths, they gave themselves over to the influence of that proud and
powerful genius, and when they were softly ravished away over the precipice of
death to find life, there it was that they began to exist in a real and natural
manner, as is fit for all creatures."
This page needs no commentary, and explains sufficiently the tendencies of what
one calls spiritualism, or "spiritism."
It is already a long time since this doctrine, or, rather, this antidoctrine,
began to work upon the world, to plunge it into universal anarchy. But the law
of equilibrium will save us, and already the great movement of reaction has
begun.
We continue the recital of the phenomena.
One day a workman paid a visit to Eliphas Levi. He was a tall man of some fifty
years old, of frank appearance, and speaking in a very reasonable manner.
Questioned as to the motive of his visit, he replied: "You ought to know it well
enough; I am come to beg and pray you to return to me what I have lost."
We must say, to be frank, that Eliphas knew nothing of {153} this visitor, nor
of what he might have lost. He accordingly replied: "You think me much more of a
sorcerer than I am; I do not know who you are, nor what you seek; consequently,
if you think that I can be useful to you in any way, you must explain yourself
and make your request more precise."
"Oh, well, since you are determined not to understand me, you will at least
recognize this," said the stranger, taking from his pocket a little, much-used
black book.
It was the "grimoire" of Pope Honorius.
One word upon this little book so much decried.
The "grimoire" of Honorius is composed of an apocryphal constitution of Honorius
II, for the evocation and control of spirits; then of some superstitious
receipts ... it was the manual of the bad priests who practised Black Magic
during the darkest periods of the middle ages. You will find there bloody rites,
mingled with profanations of the Mass and of the consecrated elements, formulae
of bewitchment and malevolent spells, and practices which stupidity alone could
credit or knavery counsel. In fact, it is a book complete of its kind; it is
consequently become very rare, and the bibliophile pushes it to very high prices
in the public sales.
"My dear sir," said the workman, sighing, "since I was ten years old, I have not
missed once performing the orison. This book never leaves me, and I comply
rigorously with all the prescribed ceremonies. Why, then, have those who used to
visit me abandoned me? Eli, Eli, lama ------"
"Stop," said Eliphas, "do not parody the most formidable words that agony ever
uttered in this world! Who are the beings who visited you by virtue of this
horrible book? Do {154} you know them? Have you promised them anything? Have you
signed a pact?"
"No," interrupted the owner of the "grimoire;" "I do not know them, and I have
entered into no agreement with them. I only know that among them the chiefs are
good, the intermediate rank partly good and partly evil; the inferiors bad, but
blindly, and without its being possible for them to do better. He whom I evoked,
and who has often appeared to me, belongs to the most elevated hierarchy; for he
was good-looking, well dressed, and always gave me favourable answers. But I
have lost a page of my "grimoire," the first, the most important, that which
bore the autograph of the spirit; and, since then, he no longer appears when I
call him.
"I am a lost man. I am naked as Job, I have no longer either force or courage. O
Master, I conjure you, you who need only say one word, make one sign, and the
spirits will obey, take pity upon me, and restore to me what I have lost!"
"Give me your grimoire!" said Eliphas. "What name used you to give to the spirit
who appeared to you?"
"I called him Adonai."
"And in what language was his signature?"
"I do not know, but I suppose it was in Hebrew."
"There," said the Professor of Transcendental Magic, after having traced two
words in the Hebrew language in the beginning and at the end of the book. "Here
are two words which the spirits of darkness will never counterfeit. Go in peace,
sleep well, and no longer evoke spirits."
The workman withdrew.
A week later, he returned to seek the Man of Science. {155}
"You have restored to me hope and life," said he; "my strength is partially
returned, I am able with the signatures that you gave me to relieve sufferers,
and cast out devils, but "him," I cannot see him again, and, until I have seen
him, I shall be sad to the day of my death. Formerly, he was always near me, he
sometimes touched me, and he used to wake me up in the night to tell me all that
I needed to know. Master, I beg of you, let me see him again!"
"See whom?"
"Adonai,"
"Do you know who Adonai is?"
"No, but I want to see him again."
"Adonai is invisible."
"I have seen him."
"He has no form."
"I have touched him."
"He is infinite."
"He is very nearly of my own height."
"The prophets say of him that the hem of his vestment, from the East to the
West, sweeps the stars of the morning."
"He had a very clean surcoat, and very white linen."
"The Holy Scripture says that one cannot see him and live."
"He had a kind and jovial face."
"But how did you proceed in order to obtain these apparitions?"
"Why, I did everything that it tells you to do in the "grimoire." "
"What! Even the bloody sacrifice?"
"Doubtless." {156}
"Unhappy man! But who, then, was the victim?"
At this question, the workman had a slight trembling; he paled, and his glance
became troubled.
"Master, you know better than I what it is," said he humbly in a low voice. "Oh,
it cost me a great deal to do it; above all, the first time, with a single blow
of the magic knife to cut the throat of that innocent creature! One night I had
just accomplished the funereal rites, I was seated in the circle on the interior
threshold of my door, and the victim had just been consumed in a great fire of
alder and cypress wood. ... All of a sudden, quite close to me .... I dreamt or
rather I felt it pass ... I heard in my ear a heartrending wail ... one would
have said that it wept; and since that moment, I think that I am hearing it
always."
Eliphas had risen; he looked fixedly upon his interlocutor. Had he before him a
dangerous madman, capable of renewing the atrocities of the seigneur of Retz?
And yet the face of the man was gentle and honest. No, it was not possible.
"But then this victim. .. tell me clearly what it was. You suppose that I know
already. Perhaps I do know, but I have reasons for wishing you to tell me."
"It was, according to the magic ritual, a young goat of a year old, virgin, and
without defect."
"A real young he-goat?"
"Doubtless. Understand that it was neither a child's toy, nor a stuffed animal."
Eliphas breathed again.
"Good," thought he; "this man is not a sorcerer worthy of the stake. He does not
know that the abominable authors {157} of the "grimoire," when they spoke of the
'virgin he-goat,' meant a little child."
"Well," said he to his consultant; "give me some details about your visions.
What you tell me interests me in the highest degree."
The sorcerer --- for one must call him so --- the sorcerer then told him of a
series of strange facts, of which two families had been witness, and these facts
were precisely identical with the phenomena of Mr.Home: hands coming out of
walls, movements of furniture, phosphorescent apparitions. One day, the rash
apprentice-magician had dared to call up Astaroth, and had seen the apparition
of a gigantic monster having the body of a hog, and the head borrowed from the
skeleton of a colossal ox. But he told all that with an accent of truth, a
certainty of having seen, which excluded every kind of doubt as to the good
faith and the entire conviction of the narrator. Eliphas, who is an epicure in
magic, was delighted with this find. In the nineteenth century, a real sorcerer
of the middle ages, a remarkably innocent and convinced sorcerer, a sorcerer who
had seen Satan under the name of Adonai, Satan dressed like a respectable
citizen, and Astaroth in his true diabolical form! What a supreme find for a
museum! What a treasure for an archaeologist!
"My friend," said he to his new disciple, "I am going to help you to find what
you say you have lost. Take my book, observe the prescriptions of the ritual,
and come again to see me in a week."
A week later he returned, but this time the workman declared that he had
invented a life-saving machine of the greatest importance for the navy. The
machine is perfectly {158} put together; it only lacks one thing --- it will not
work: there is a hidden defect in the machinery. What was that defect? The evil
spirit alone could tell him. It is then absolutely necessary to evoke him! ...
"Take care you do not!" said Eliphas. "You had much better say for nine days
this qabalistic evocation." He gave him a leaf covered with manuscript. "Begin
this evening, and return to-morrow to tell me what you have seen, for to night
you will have a manifestation."
The next day, our good man did not miss the appointment.
"I woke up suddenly," said he, "upon one o'clock in the morning. In front of my
bed I saw a bright light, and in this light a "shadowy arm" which passed and
repassed before me, as if to magnetize me. Then I went to sleep again, and some
instants afterwards, waking anew, I saw again the same light, but it had changed
its place. It had passed from left to right, and upon a luminous background I
distinguished the silhouette of a man who was looking at me with arms crossed."
"What was this man like?"
"Just about your height and breadth."
"It is well. Go, and continue to do what I told you."
The nine days rolled by; at the end of that time, a new visit; but this time he
was absolutely radiant and excited. As soon as he caught sight of Eliphas:
"Thanks, Master!" he cried. "The machine works! People whom I did not know have
come to place at my disposal the funds which were necessary to carry out my
enterprise; I have found again peace in sleep; and all that thanks to your
power!" {159}
"Say, rather, thanks to your faith and your docility. And now, farewell: I must
work. .. Well, why do you assume this suppliant air, and what more do you want
of me?"
"Oh, if you only would ------"
"Well, what now? Have you not obtained all that you asked for, and even more
than you asked for, for you did not mention money to me?"
"Yes, doubtless," said the other sighing; "but I do want to see him again!"
"Incorrigible!" said Eliphas.
Some days afterwards, the Professor of Transcendental Magic was awakened, about
two o'clock in the morning, by an acute pain in the head. For some moments he
feared a cerebral congestion. He therefore rose, relit his lamp, opened his
window, walked to and fro in his study, and then, calmed by the fresh air of the
morning, he lay down again, and slept deeply. He had a nightmare: he saw,
terribly real, the giant with the fleshless ox's head of which the workman had
spoken to him. The monster pursued him, and struggled with him. When he woke up,
it was already day, and somebody was knocking at his door. Eliphas rose, threw
on a dressing- gown, and opened; it was the workman.
"Master," said he, entering hastily, and with an alarmed air; "how are you?"
"Very well," replied Eliphas.
"But last night, at two o'clock in the morning, did you not run a great danger?"
Eliphas did not grasp the allusion; he already no longer remembered the
indisposition of the night. {160}
"A danger?" said he. "No; none that I know of."
"Have you not been assaulted by a monster phantom, who sought to strangle you?
Did it not hurt you?"
Eliphas remembered.
"Yes," said he, "certainly, I had the beginning of a sort of apoplectic attack,
and a horrible dream. But how do you know that?"
"At the same time, an invisible hand struck me roughly on the shoulder, and
awoke me suddenly. I dreamt then that I saw you fighting with Astaroth. I jumped
up, and a voice said in my ear: 'Arise and go to the help of thy Master; he is
in danger.' I got up in a great hurry. But where must I run? What danger
threatened you? Was it at your own house, or elsewhere? The voice said nothing
about that. I decided to wait for sunrise; and immediately day dawned, I ran,
and here I am."
"Thanks, friend," said the magus, holding out his hand; "Astaroth is a stupid
joker; all that happened last night was a little blood to the head. Now, I am
perfectly well. Be assured, then, and return to your work."
Strange as may be the facts which we have just related, there remains for us to
unveil a tragic drama much more extraordinary still.
It refers to the deed of blood which at the beginning of this year plunged Paris
and all Christendom into mourning and stupefaction; a deed in which no one
suspected that Black Magic had any part.
Here is what happened:
During the winter, at the beginning of last year, a bookseller informed the
author of the "Dogme et rituel de la" {161} "haute magie" that an ecclesiastic
was looking for his address, testifying the greatest desire to see him. Eliphas
Levi did not feel himself immediately prepossessed with confidence towards the
stranger, to the point of exposing himself without precaution to his visits; he
indicated the house of a friend, where he was to be in the company of his
faithful disciple, Desbarrolles. At the hour and date appointed they went, in
fact, to the house of Mme. A------, and found that the ecclesiastic had been
waiting for them for some moments.
He was a young and slim man; he had an arched and pointed nose, with dull blue
eyes. His bony and projecting forehead was rather broad than high, his head was
dolichocephalic, his hair flat and short, parted on one side, of a greyish blond
with just a tinge of chestnut of a rather curious and disagreeable shade. His
mouth was sensual and quarrelsome; his manners were affable, his voice soft, and
his speech sometimes a little embarrassed. Questioned by Eliphas Levi concerning
the object of his visit, he replied that he was on the look-out for the
"grimoire" of Honorius, and that he had come to learn from the Professor of
Occult Science how to obtain that little black book, now-a-days almost
impossible to find.
"I would gladly give a hundred francs for a copy of that grimoire," said he.
"The work in itself is valueless," said Eliphas. "It is a pretended constitution
of Honorius II, which you will find perhaps quoted by some erudite collector of
apocryphal constitutions; you can find it in the library."
"I will do so, for I pass almost all my time in Paris in the public libraries."
{162}
"You are not occupied in the ministry in Paris?"
"No, not now; I was for some little while employed in the parish of St.
Germain-Auxerrois."
"And you now spend your time, I understand, in curious researches in occult
science."
"Not precisely, but I am seeking the realization of a thought. ... I have
something to do."
"I do not suppose that this something can be an operation of Black Magic. You
know as well as I do, reverend sir, that the Church has always condemned, and
still condemns, severely, everything which relates to these forbidden
practices."
A pale smile, imprinted with a sort of sarcastic irony, was all the answer that
the Abbe gave, and the conversation fell to the ground.
However, the cheiromancer Desbarrolles was attentively looking at the hand of
the priest; he perceived it, a quite natural explanation followed, the Abbe
offered graciously and of his own accord his hand to the experimenter.
Desbarrolles knit his brows, and appeared embarrassed. The hand was damp and
cold, the fingers smooth and spatulated; the mount of Venus, or the part of the
palm of the hand which corresponds to the thumb, was of a noteworthy
development, the line of life was short and broken, there were crosses in the
centre of the hand, and stars upon the mount of the moon.
"Reverend sir," said Desbarrolles, "if you had not a very solid religious
education you would easily become a dangerous sectary, for you are led on the
one hand toward the most exalted mysticism, and on the other to the most
concentrated obstinacy combined with the greatest secretiveness that can {163}
possibly be. You want much, but you imagine more, and as you confide your
imaginations to nobody, they might attain proportions which would make them
veritable enemies for yourself. Your habits are contemplative an rather
easygoing, but it is a somnolence whose awakenings are perhaps to be dreaded.
You are carried away by a passion which your state of life ------ But pardon,
reverend sir, I fear that I am over-stepping the boundaries of discretion."
"Say everything, sir; I am willing to hear all, I wish to now everything."
"Oh, well! If, as I do not doubt to be the case, you turn to the profit of
charity all the restless activities with which the passions of your heart
furnish you, you must often be blessed for your good works."
The Abbe once more smiled that dubious and fatal smile which gave so singular an
expression to his pallid countenance. He rose and took his leave without having
given his name, and without any one having thought to ask him for it.
Eliphas and Desbarrolles reconducted him as far as the staircase, in token of
respect for his dignity as a priest.
Near the staircase he turned and said slowly:
"Before long, you will hear something. ... You will hear me spoken of," he
added, emphasizing each word. Then he saluted with head and hand, turned without
adding a single word, and descended the staircase.
The two friends returned to Mme. A------'s room.
"There is a singular personage," said Eliphas; "I think I have seen Pierrot of
the Funambules playing the part of a traitor. What he said to us on his
departure seemed to me very much like a threat." {164}
"You frightened him," said Mme. A------. "Before your arrival, he was beginning
to open his whole mind, but you spoke to him of conscience and of the laws of
the Church, and he no longer dared to tell you what he wished."
"Bah! What did he wish then?"
"To see the devil."
"Perhaps he thought I had him in my pocket?"
"No, but he knows that you give lessons in the Qabalah, and in magic, and so he
hoped that you would help him in his enterprise. He told my daughter and myself
that in his vicarage in the country, he had already made one night an evocation
of the devil by the help of a popular "grimoire." 'Then' said he, 'a whirlwind
seemed to shake the vicarage; the rafts groaned, the wainscoting cracked, the
doors shook, the windows opened with a crash, and whistlings were heard in every
corner of the house.' He then expected that formidable vision to follow, but he
saw nothing; no monster presented itself; in a word, the devil would not appear.
That is why he is looking for the "grimoire" of Honorius, for he hopes to find
in it stronger conjurations, and more efficacious rites."
"Really! But the man is then a monster, or a madman!"
"I think he is just simply in love," said Desbarrolles. "He is gnawed by some
absurd passion, and hopes for absolutely nothing unless he can get the devil to
interfere."
"But how then --- what does he mean when he says that we shall hear him spoken
of?"
"Who knows? Perhaps he thinks to carry off the Queen of England, or the Sultana
Valide."
The conversation dropped, and a whole year passed {165} without Mme. A------. or
Desbarrolles, or Eliphas hearing the unknown young priest spoken of.
In the course of the night between the 1st and 2nd of January, 1857, Eliphas
Levi was awakened suddenly by the emotions of a bizarre and dismal dream. It
seemed to him that he was in a dilapidated room of gothic architecture, rather
like the abandoned chapel of an old castle. A door hidden by a black drapery
opened on to this room; behind the drapery one guessed the hidden light of
tapers, and it seemed to Eliphas that, driven by a curiosity full of terror, he
was approaching the black drapery. ... Then the drapery was parted, and a hand
was stretched forth and seized the arm of Eliphas. He saw no one, but he heard a
low voice which said in his ear:
"Come and see your father, who is about to die."
The magus awoke, his heart palpitating, and his forehead bathed in sweat.
"What can this dream mean?" thought he. "It is long since my father died; why am
I told that he is going to die, and why has this warning upset me?"
The following night, the same dream recurred with the same circumstances; once
more Eliphas awoke, hearing a voice in his ear repeat:
"Come and see your father, who is about to die."
This repeated nightmare made a painful impression upon Eliphas: he had accepted,
for the 3rd January, an invitation to dinner in pleasant company, but he wrote
and excused himself, feeling himself little inclined for the gaiety of a banquet
of artists. He remained, then, in his study; the weather was cloudy; at midday
he received a visit from one of his magical {166} pupils, Viscount M------. When
he left, the rain was falling in such abundance that Eliphas offered his
umbrella to the Viscount, who refused it. There followed a contest of
politeness, of which the result was that Eliphas went out to see the Viscount
home. While they were in the street, the rain stopped, the Viscount found a
carriage, and Eliphas, instead of returning to his house, mechanically crossed
the Luxembourg, went out by the gate which opens on the Rue d'Enfer, and found
himself opposite the Pantheon.
A double row of booths, improvised for the Festival of St. Genevieve, indicated
to pilgrims the road to St. Etienne-du-Mont. Eliphas, whose heart was sad, and
consequently disposed to prayer, followed that way and entered the church. It
might have been at that time about four o'clock in the afternoon.
The church was full of the faithful, and the office was performed with great
concentration, and extraordinary solemnity. The banners of the parishes of the
city, and of the suburbs, bore witness to the public veneration for the virgin
who saved Paris from famine and invasion. At the bottom of the church, the tomb
of St. Genevieve shone gloriously with light. They were chanting the litanies,
and the procession was coming out of the choir.
After the cross, accompanied by its acolytes, and followed by the choirboys,
came the banner of St. Genevieve; then, walking in double file, came the lady
devotees of St. Genevieve, clothed in black, with a white veil on the head, a
blue ribbon around the neck, with the medal of the legend, a taper in the hand,
surmounted by the little gothic lantern that tradition gives to the images of
the saint. For, in the old books, {167} St Genevieve is always represented with
a medal on her neck, that which St. Germain d'Auxerre gave her, and holding a
taper, which the devil tries to extinguish, but which is protected from the
breath of the unclean spirit by a miraculous little tabernacle.
After the lady devotees came the clergy; then finally appeared the venerable
Archbishop of Paris, mitred with a white mitre, wearing a cope which was
supported on each side by his two vicars; the prelate, leaning on his cross,
walked slowly, and blessed to right and left the crowd which knelt about his
path. Eliphas saw the Archbishop for the first time, and noticed the features of
his countenance. They expressed kindliness and gentleness; but one might observe
the expression of a great fatigue, and even of a nervous suffering painfully
dissimulated.
The procession descended to the foot of the church, traversing the nave, went up
again by the aisle at the left of the door, and came to the station of the tomb
of St. Genevieve; then it returned by the right-hand aisle, chanting the
litanies as it went. A group of the faithful followed the procession, and walked
immediately behind the Archbishop.
Eliphas mingled in this group, in order more easily to get through the crowd
which was about to reform, so that he might regain the door of the church. He
was lost in reverie, softened by this pious solemnity.
The head of the procession had already returned to the choir, the Archbishop was
arriving at the railing of the nave: there the passage was too narrow for three
people to walk in file; the Archbishop was in front, and the two grand-vicars
behind him, always holding the edges of his cope, which was {168} thus thrown
off, and drawn backwards, in such a manner that the prelate presented his breast
uncovered, and protected only the by crossed embroideries of his stole.
Then those who were behind the Archbishop saw him tremble, and we heard an
interruption in a loud and clear voice; but without shouting, or clamour. What
had been said? It seemed that it was: "Down with the goddesses!" But I thought I
had not heard aright, so out of place and void of sense it seemed. However, the
exclamation was repeated twice or thrice; then some one cried: "Save the
Archbishop!" Other voices replied: "To arms!" The crowd, overturning the chairs
and the barriers, scattered, and rushed towards the doors shrieking. Amidst the
wails of the children, and the screams of the women, Eliphas, carried away by
the crowd, found himself somehow or other out of the church; but the last look
that he was able to cast upon it was smitten with a terrible and ineffaceable
picture!
In the midst of a circle made large by the affright of all those who surrounded
him, the prelate was standing alone, leaning always on his cross, and held up by
the stiffness of his cope, which the grand-vicars had let go, and which
accordingly hung down to the ground.
The head of the Archbishop was a little thrown back, his eyes and his free hand
raised to heaven. His attitude was that which Eugene Delacroix has given to the
Bishop of Liege in the picture of his assassination by the bandits of the Wild
Boar of the Ardennes;<<Extract from Sir Walter Scott's Notes on the murder of
the Bishop of Liege: "The Bishop's murder did not take place till 1482. In the
months of August and September of that year, "William del la Marck," called 'The
Wild Boar of the Ardennes.' entered into a conspiracy with the discontented
citizens of Liege against their Bishop, Louis of Bourbon, being aided with
considerable sums of money by the King of France. By this means and with the
assistance of many murderers and banditti, who thronged to him as to a leader
befitting them, De la Marck assembled a body of troops. With this little army he
approached the city of Liege. Upon this, the citizens, who were engaged in the
conspiracy, came to their Bishop, and, offering to stand by him to the death,
exhorted him to march out against these robbers. The Bishop, therefore, put
himself at the head of a few troops of his own, trusting to the assistance of
the people of Liege. But as soon as they came in sight of the enemy, the
citizens, as before agreed, fled from the Bishop's banner, and he was left with
his own handful of adherents. At this moment De la Marck charged at the head of
his men with the expected success. The Bishop was brought before De la Marck,
who first cut him over the face, then murdered him with his own hand, and caused
his body to be exposed naked in the great square of Liege before St. Lambert's
Cathedral."
Three years after the Bishop's death, Maximilian, Emperor of Austria, caused De
la Marck to be be arrested at Utrecht, where he was beheaded in 1485.>> there
was in his gesture the whole {169} epic or martyrdom; it was an acceptance and
an offering; a prayer for his people, and a pardon for his murderer.
The day was falling, and the church was beginning to grow dark. The Archbishop,
his arms raised to heaven, lighted by a last ray which penetrated the casements
of the nave, stood out upon a dark background, where one could scarcely
distinguish a pedestal without a statue, on which were written these two words
of the Passion of Christ: ECCE HOMO! and farther in the background, an
apocalyptic painting representing the four plagues ready to let themselves loose
upon the world, and the whirlwinds of hell, following the dusty traces of the
pale horse of death.
Before the Archbishop, a lifted arm, sketched in shadow like an infernal
silhouette, held and brandished a knife. Policemen, sword in hand, were running
up.
And while all this tumult was going on at the bottom of the church, the singing
of the litanies continued in the choir, {170} as the harmony of the orbs of
heaven goes on for ever, careless of our revolutions and of our anguish.
Eliphas Levi had been swept out of the church by the crowd. He had come out by
the right-hand door. Almost at the same moment the left-hand door was flung
violently open, and a furious group of men rushed out of the church.
This group was whirling around a man whom fifty arms seemed to hold, whom a
hundred shaken fists sought to strike.
This man later complained of having been roughly handled by the police, but, as
far as one could see in such an uproar, the police were rather protecting him
against the exasperation of the mob.
Women were running after him, shrieking: "Kill him!"
"But what has he done?" cried other voices.
"The wretch! He has struck the Archbishop with his fist!" said the women.
Then others came out of the church, and contradictory accounts were flying to
and fro.
"The archbishop was frightened, and has fainted," said some.
"He is dead!" replied others.
"Did you see the knife?" added a third comer. "It is as long as a sabre, and the
blood was steaming on the blade."
"The poor Archbishop has lost one of his slippers," remarked an old woman,
joining her hands.
"It is nothing! It is nothing!" cried a woman who rented chairs. "You can come
back to the church: Monseigneur is not hurt; they have just said so from the
pulpit."
The crowd then made a movement to return to the church. {171}
"Go! Go!" said at that very moment the grave and anguished voice of a priest.
"The office cannot be continued; we are going to close the church: it is
profaned."
"How is the Archbishop?" said a man.
"Sir," replied the priest, "the Archbishop is dying; perhaps even at this very
moment he is dead!"
The crowd dispersed in consternation to spread the mournful news over Paris.
A bizarre incident happened to Eliphas, and made a kind of diversion for his
deep sorrow at what had just passed.
At the moment of the uproar, an aged woman of the most respectable appearance
had taken his arm, and claimed his protection.
He made it a duty to reply to this appeal, and when he had got out of the crowd
with this lady: "How happy I am," said she, "to have met a man who weeps for
this great crime, for which, at this moment, so many wretches rejoice!"
"What are you saying, madam? How is it possible that there should exist beings
so depraved as to rejoice at so great a misfortune?"
"Silence!" said the old lady; "perhaps we are overheard. ... Yes," she added,
lowering her voice; "there are people who are exceedingly pleased at what has
happened. And look there, just now, there was a man of sinister mien, who said
to the anxious crowd, when they asked him what had happened, 'Oh, it is nothing!
It is a spider which has fallen.'"<<This man was presumably Levi himself. As
"the abominable authors of the Grimoires concealed "child" beneath "kid," so
Levi is careful to disguise his true attitude to the Church which he wished to
destroy. --- O. M.>>
"No, madam, you must have misunderstood. The crowd {172} would not have suffered
so abominable a remark, and the man would have been immediately
arrested."<<Unless he were able to make himself invisible, as Levi, of course,
could do. This is the point of his irony. --- O. M.>>
"Would to God that all the world thought as you do!" said the lady.
Then she added: "I recommend myself to your prayers, for I see clearly that you
are a man of God."
"Perhaps every one does not think so," replied Eliphas.
"And what does the world matter to us?" replied the lady with vivacity; "the
world lies and calumniates, and is impious! It speaks evil of you, perhaps. I am
not surprised at it, and if you knew what it says of me, you would easily
understand why I despise its opinion!"
"The world speaks evil of you, madam?"
"Yes, in truth, and the greatest evil that can be said."
"How so?"
"It accuses me of sacrilege."
"You frighten me. Of what sacrilege, if you please?"
"Of an unworthy comedy that I am supposed to have played in order to deceive two
children, on the mountain of the Salette."
"What! You must be ------"
"I am Mademoiselle de la Merliere."
"I have heard speak of your trial, mademoiselle, and of the scandal which it
caused, but it seems to me that your age and your position ought to have
sheltered you from such an accusation."
"Come and see me, sir, and I will present you to my lawyer, M. Favre, who is a
man of talent whom I wish to gain to God." {173}
Thus talking, the two companions had arrived at the Rue du Vieux Colombier. The
Lady thanked her improvised cavalier, and renewed her invitation to come to see
her.
"I will try to do so," said Eliphas; "but if I come shall I ask the porter for
Mille. de la Merliere?"
"Do not do so," said she; "I am not know under that name; ask for Mme. Dutruck."
"Dutruck, certainly, madam; I present my humble compliments."
And they separated.
The trial of the assassin began, and Eliphas, reading in the newspapers that the
man was a priest, that he had belonged to the clergy of St. Germain l'Auxerrois,
that he had been a country vicar, and that he seemed exalted to the point of
madness, recalled the pale priest who, a year earlier, had been looking for the
"grimoire" of Honorius. But the description which the public sheets gave of the
criminal disagreed with the recollection of the Professor of Magic. In fact, the
majority of the papers said that he had black hair. ... "It is not he, then,"
thought Eliphas. "However, I still keep in my ear and in my memory the word
which would now be explained for me by this great crime: 'You will soon learn
something. Before a little, you will hear speak of me.'"
The trial took place with all the frightful vicissitudes with which every one is
familiar, and the accused was condemned to death.
The next day, Eliphas read in a legal newspaper the account of this unheard-of
scene in the annals of justice, but a cloud passed over his eyes when he came to
the description of the accused: "He is blond." {174}
"It must be he," said the Professor of Magic.
Some days afterwards, a person who had been able to sketch the convict during
the trial, showed it to Eliphas.
"Let me copy this drawing," said he, all trembling with fear.
He made the copy, and took it to his friend Desbarrolles, of whom he asked,
without other explanation:
"Do you know this head?"
"Yes," said Desbarrolles energetically. "Wait a moment: yes, it is the
mysterious priest whom we saw at Mme. A------'s, and who wanted to make magical
evocations."
"Oh, well, my friend, you confirm me in my sad conviction. The man we saw, we
shall never see again; the hand which you examined has become a bloody hand. We
have heard speak of him, as he told us we should; that pale priest, do you know
what was his name?"
"Oh, my God!" said Desbarolles, changing colour, "I am afraid to know it!"
"Well, you know it: it was the wretch Louis Verger!"
Some weeks after what we have just recorded, Eliphas Levi was talking with a
bookseller whose specialty was to make a collection of old books concerning the
occult sciences. They were talking of the "grimoire" of Honorius.
"Now-a-days, it is impossible to find it," said the merchant. "The last that I
had in my hands I sold to a priest for a hundred francs."
"A young priest? And do you remember what he looked like?"
"Oh, perfectly, but you ought to know him well yourself, {175} for he told me he
had seen you, and it is I who sent him to you."
No more doubt, then; the unhappy priest had found the fatal "grimoire," he had
done the evocation, and prepared himself for the murder by a series of
sacrileges. For this is in what the infernal evocations consist, according to
the "grimoire" of Honorius:<<WEH NOTE: This is a loose paraphrase and deliberate
distortion of the first preparations and orison following the "Bull of Honorius"
in the early part of the Grimoire. Not only is the book libeled to Honorius III,
instead of Honorius II as Levi states (Waite says Honorous I!), but the
"diabolical signatures" are totally different from those described by Levi!
Levi's changes obscure the text and add false linkages to "satanic" language, in
addition to exaggerating the very real sacrileges. A brief account of this
Grimoire will be found in the "Thelema Lodge Calendar" for March 1989 e.v. A
translation of the the actual Grimoire will be found in Idries Shah's "The
Secret Lore of Magic", Citadel Press, New York, 1970.>>
"Choose a black cock, and give him the name of the spirit of darkness which one
wishes to evoke.
"Kill the cock, and keep its heart, its tongue, and the first feather of its
left wing.
"Dry the tongue and the heart, and reduce them to powder.
"Eat no meat and drink no wine, that day.
"On Tuesday, at dawn, say a mass of the angels.
"Trace upon the altar itself, with the feather of the cock dipped in the
consecrated wine, certain diabolical signatures (those of Mr. Home's pencil, and
the bloody hosts of Vintras).
"On Wednesday, prepare a taper of yellow wax; rise at midnight, and alone, in
the church, begin the office of the dead.
"Mingle with this office infernal evocations.
"Finish the office by the light of a single taper, extinguish it immediately,
and remain without light in the church thus profaned until sunrise.
"On Thursday, mingle with the consecrated water the powder of the tongue and
heart of the black cock, and let the whole be swallowed by a male lamb of nine
days old. ..." {176}
The hand refuses to write the rest. It is a mixture of brutalizing practices and
revolting crimes, so constituted as to kill for evermore judgment and
conscience.<<The great painter, dipping his brush in earthquake and eclipse,
employs an excess of yellow. --- O. M.>>
But in order to communicate with the phantom of absolute evil, to realize that
phantom to the point of seeing and touching it, is it not necessary to be
without conscience and without judgment?
There is doubtless the secret of this incredible perversity, of this murderous
fury, of this unwholesome hate against all order, all ministry, all hierarchy,
of this fury, above all, against the dogma which sanctifies peace, obedience,
gentleness, purity, under so touching an emblem as that of a mother.
This wretch thought himself sure not to die. The Emperor, thought he, would be
obliged to pardon him; an honourable exile awaited him; his crime would give him
an enormous celebrity; his reveries would be bought for their weight in gold by
the booksellers. He would become immensely rich, attract the notice of a great
lady, and marry beyond the seas. It is by such promises that the phantom of the
devil, long ago, lured Gilles de Laval, Seigneur of Retz, and made him wade from
crime to crime. A man capable of evoking the devil, according to the rites of
the "grimoire" of Honorius, has gone so far upon the road of evil that he is
disposed to all kinds of hallucinations, and all lies. So, Verger slept in
blood, to dream of I know not what abominable pantheon; and he awoke upon the
scaffold.
But the aberrations of perversity do not constitute an insanity; the execution
of this wretch proved it. {177}
One knows what desperate resistance he made to his executioners. "It is
treason," said he; "I cannot die so! Only one hour, an hour to write to the
Emperor! The Emperor is bound to save me."
Who, then, was betraying him?
Who, then, had promised him life?
Who, then, had assured him beforehand of a clemency which was impossible,
because it would revolt the conscience of the public?
Ask all that of the "grimoire" of Honorius!
Two incidents in this tragic story bear upon the phenomena produced by Mr. Home:
the noise of the storm heard by the wicked priest in his early evocations, and
the difficulty which he found in expressing his real thought in the presence of
Eliphas Levi.
One may also comment upon the apparition of the sinister man taking pleasure in
the public grief, and uttering an indeed infernal word in the midst of the
consternation of the crowd, an apparition only noticed by the ecstatic of La
Salette, the too celebrated Mlle. de La Merliere, who has the air after all of a
worthy individual, but very excitable, and perhaps capable of acting and
speaking without knowing it herself, under the influence of a sort of ascetic
sleep-waking.
This word "sleep-waking" brings us back to Mr. Home, and our anecdotes have not
made us forget what the title of this work promised to our readers.
We ought, then, to tell them what Mr. Home is.
We keep our promise.
"Mr. Home is an invalid suffering from a contagious sleep-waking." {178}
This is an assertion.
It remains to us to give an explanation and a demonstration.
That explanation and demonstration, in order to be complete, demand a work
sufficient to fill a book.
That book has been written, and we shall publish it shortly.
Here is the title:
"The Reason of Miracles, or the Devil at the Tribunal of Science."<<That was the
title which we intended at that time to give to the book which we now publish.
--- E. L.>>
"Why the devil?"
Because we have demonstrated by facts what Mr. de Mirville had, before us,
incompletely set forth.
We say "incompletely"; because the devil is, for Mr. de Mirville, a fantastic
personage, while for us, it is the misuse of a natural force.
A medium once said: "Hell is not a place, it is a state."
We shall be able to add: "The devil is not a person or a force; it is a vice,
and in consequence, a weakness."
Let us return for a moment to the study of phenomena!
Mediums are, in general, of poor health and narrow limitations.
They can accomplish nothing extraordinary in the presence of calm and educated
persons.
One must be accustomed to them before seeing or feeling anything.
The phenomena are not identical for all present. For example, where one will see
a hand, another will perceive nothing but a whitish smoke. {179}
Persons impressed by the magnetism of Mr. Home feel a sort of indisposition; it
seems to them that the room turns round, and the temperature seems to them to
grow rapidly lower.
The miracles are more successful in the presence of a few people chosen by the
medium himself.
In a meeting of several persons, it may be that all will see the miracles ---
with the exception of one, who will see absolutely nothing.
Among the persons who do see, all do not see the same thing.
Thus, for example:
One evening, at Mme. de V------'s, the medium made appear a child which that
lady had lost. Mme. de B------ alone saw the child; Count de M------ saw a
little whitish vapour, in the shape of a pyramid; the others saw nothing.
Everybody knows that certain substances, hashish, for example, intoxicate
without taking away the use of reason, and cause to be seen with an astonishing
vividness things which do not exist.
A great part of the phenomena of Mr. Home belong to a natural influence similar
to that of hashish.
This is the reason why the medium refuses to operate except before a small
number of persons chosen by himself.
The rest of these phenomena should be attributed to magnetic power.
To see anything at Mr. Home's "seances" is not a reassuring index of the health
of him who sees.
And even if his health should be in other ways excellent, {180} the vision
indicates a transitory perturbation of the nervous apparatus in its relation to
imagination and light.
If this perturbation were frequently repeated, he would become seriously ill.
Who knows how many collapses, attacks of tetanus, insanities, violent deaths,
the mania of table-turning has already produced?
These phenomena become particularly terrible when perversity takes possession of
them.
It is then that one can really affirm the intervention and the presence of the
spirit of evil.
Perversity or fatality, these pretended miracles obey one of these two powers.
As to qabalistic writings and mysterious signatures, we shall say that they
reproduce themselves by the magnetic intuition of the mirages of thought in the
universal vital fluid.
These instinctive reflections may be produced if the magic Word has nothing
arbitrary in it, and if the signs of the occult sanctuary are the natural
expressions of absolute ideas.
It is this which we shall demonstrate in our book.
But, in order not to send back our readers from the unknown to the future, we
shall detach beforehand two chapters of that unpublished work, one upon the
qabalistic Word, the other upon the secrets of the Qabalah, and we shall draw
conclusions which will compete in a manner satisfactory to all the explanation
which we have promised in the matter of Mr. Home.
There exists a power which generates forms; this power is light. {181}
Light creates forms in accordance with the laws of eternal mathematics, by the
universal equilibrium of light and shadow.
The primitive signs of thought trace themselves by themselves in the light,
which is the material instrument of thought.
God is the soul of light. The universal and infinite light is for us, as it
were, the body of god.
The Qabalah, or transcendental magic, is the science of light.
Light corresponds to life.
The kingdom of shadows is death.
All the dogmas of true religion are written in the Qabalah in characters of
light upon a page of shadow.
The page of shadows consists of blind beliefs.
Light is the great plastic medium.
The alliance of the soul and the body is a marriage of light and shadow.
Light is the instrument of the Word, it is the white writing of God upon the
great book of night.
Light is the source of thought, and it is in it that one must seek for the
origin of all religious dogma. But there is only one true dogma, as there is
only one pure light; shadow alone is infinitely varied.
Light, shadow, and their harmony, which is the vision of beings, form the
principle analogous to the great dogmas of Trinity, of Incarnation, and of
Redemption.
Such is also the mystery of the cross.
It will be easy for us to prove this by an appeal to religious monuments, by the
signs of the primitive Word, by {182} those books which contain the secrets of
the Qabalah, and finally by the reasoned explanation of all the mysteries by the
means of the keys of qabalistic magic.
In all symbolisms, in fact, we find ideas of antagonism and of harmony producing
a trinitarian notion in the conception of divinity, following which the
mythological personification of the four cardinal points of heaven completes the
sacred septenary, the base of all dogmas and of all rites. In order to convince
oneself of it, it is sufficient to read again and meditate upon the learned work
of Dupuis, who would be a great qabalist if he had seen a harmony of truths
where his negative preoccupations only permitted him to see a concert of errors.
It is not here our business to repeat his work, which everybody knows; but it is
important to prove that the religious reform brought about by Moses was
altogether qabalistic, that Christianity, in instituting a new dogma, has simply
come nearer to the primitive sources of the teachings of Moses, and that the
Gospel is no more than a transparent veil thrown upon the universal and natural
mysteries of oriental initiation.
A distinguished but little known man of learning, Mr. P. Lacour, in his book on
the Elohim or Mosaic God, has thrown a great light on that question, and has
rediscovered in the symbols of Egypt all the allegorical figures of Genesis.
More recently, another courageous student of vast erudition, Mr. Vincent (de
l'Yonne), has published a treatise upon idolatry among both the ancients and the
moderns, in which he raises the veil of universal mythology.
We invite conscientious students to read these various {183} works, and we
confine ourselves to the special study of the Qabalah among the Hebrews.
The Logos, or the word, being according to the initiates of that science the
complete revelation, the principles of the holy Qabalah ought to be found
reunited in the signs themselves of which the primitive alphabet is composed.
Now, this is what we find in all Hebrew grammars.<<This is all deliberately
wrong. That Levi knew the correct attributions is evident from a M.S. annotated
by himself. Levi refused to reveal these attributions, rightly enough, as his
grade was not high enough, and the time not ripe. Note the subtlety of the form
of his statement. The correct attributions are in Liber 777. --- O. M.>>
There is a fundamental and universal letter which generates all the others. It
is the IOD.
There are two other mother letters, opposed and analogous among themselves;,the
ALEPH HB:Aleph and the MEM HB:Mem , according to others the SCHIN HB:Shin .
There are seven double letters, the BETH HB:Bet , the GIMEL HB:Gemel , the
DALETH HB:Dalet , the KAPH HB:Koph , the PE HB:Peh , the RESH HB:Resh , and the
TAU HB:Taw .
Finally, there are twelve simple letters; in all twenty-two. The unity is
represented, in a relative manner, by the ALEPH; the ternary is figured either
by IOD, MEM, SCHIN, or by ALEPH, MEM, SCHIN.
The septenary, by BETH, GIMEL, DALETH, KAPH, PE, RESH, TAU.
The duodenary, by the other letters.
The duodenary is the ternary multiplied by four; and it reenters thus into the
symbolism of the septenary.
Each letter represents a number: each assemblage of letters, a series of
numbers. {184}
The numbers represent absolute philosophical ideas.
The letters are shorthand hieroglyphs.
Let us see now the hieroglyphic and philosophical significations of each of the
twenty-two letters ("vide" Bellarmin, Reuchlin, Saint-Jerome, Kabala denudata,
Sepher Yetzirah, Technica curiosa of Father Schott, Picus de Mirandola, and
other authors, especially those of the collection of Pistorius).
THE MOTHERS
The IOD. --- The absolute principle, the productive being.
The MEM. --- Spirit, or the Jakin of Solomon.
The SCHIN. --- Matter, or the column called Boaz.
THE DOUBLE LETTERS
BETH. Reflection, thought, the moon, the Angel Gabriel, Prince of mysteries.
GIMEL. Love, will, Venus, the Angel Anael, Prince of life and death.
DALETH. Force, power, Jupiter, Sachiel, Melech, King of kings.
KAPH. Violence, strife, work, Mars, Samael Zebaoth, Prince of Phalanges.
PE. Eloquence, intelligence, Mercury, Raphael, Prince of sciences.
RESH. Destruction and regeneration, Time, Saturn, Cassiel, King of tombs and of
solitude.
TAU. Truth, light, the Sun, Michael, King of the Elohim. {185}
THE SIMPLE LETTERS
The simple letters are divided into four triplicities, having for titles the
four letters of the divine tetragam Yod-Heh-Vau-Heh.
In the divine tetragram, the IOD, as we have just said, symbolizes the
productive and active principle. --- The HE HB:Heh represents the passive
productive principle, the CTEIS. --- The VAU symbolizes the union of the two, or
the lingam, and the final HE is the image of the second reproductive principle;
that is to say, of the passive reproduction in the world of effects and forms.
The twelve simple letters, HB:Qof HB:Tzaddi HB:Ayin HB:Samekh HB:Nun HB:Lamed
HB:Tet HB:Chet HB:Zain HB:Vau HB:Heh and HB:Yod or HB:Mem , divided into threes,
reproduce the notion of the primitive triangle, with the interpretation, and
under the influence, of each of the letters of the tetragram.
One sees that the philosophy and the religious dogma of the Qabalah are there
indicated in a complete but veiled manner.
Let us now investigate the allegories of Genesis.
"In the beginning (IOD the unity of being,) Elohim, the equilibrated forces
(Jakin and Boaz), created the heaven (spirit) and the earth (matter), or in
other words, good and evil, affirmation and negation." Thus begins the Mosaic
account of creation.
Then, when it comes to giving a place to man, and a sanctuary to his alliance
with divinity, Moses speaks of a garden, in the midst of which a single fountain
branched into four rivers (the IOD and the TETRAGRAM), and then of two trees,
one of life, and the other of death, planted near the river. There are placed
the man and the woman, the active and the {186} passive; the woman sympathizes
with death, and draws Adam with her in her fall. They are then driven out from
the sanctuary of truth, and a kerub (a bull-headed sphinx, "vide" the
hieroglyphs of Assyria, of India and of Egypt) is placed at the gate of the
garden of truth in order to prevent the profane from destroying the tree of
life. Here we have mysterious dogma, with all its allegories and its terrors,
replacing the simplicity of truth. The idol has replaced God, and fallen
humanity will not delay to give itself up to the worship of the golden calf.
The mystery of the necessary and successive reactions of the two principles on
each other is indicated subsequently by the allegory of Cain and Abel. Force
avenges itself by oppression for the seduction of weakness; martyred weakness
expiates and intercedes for force when it is condemned for its crime to branding
remorse. Thus is revealed the equilibrium of the moral world; here is the basis
of all the prophecies, and the fulcrum of all intelligent political thought. To
abandon a force to its own excesses is to condemn it to suicide.
Dupuis failed to understand the universal religious dogma of the Qabalah,
because he had not the science of the beautiful hypothesis, partly demonstrated
and realized more from day to day by the discoveries of science: I refer to
"universal analogy."
Deprived of this key of transcendental dogma, he could see no more of the gods
than the sun, the seven planets, and the twelve signs of the zodiac; but he did
not see in the sun the image of the Logos of Plato, in the seven planets the
seven notes of the celestial gamut, and in the zodiac the quadrature of the
ternary circle of all initiations. {187}
The Emperor Julian, that "adept of the spirit" who was never understood, that
initiate whose paganism was less idolatrous than the faith of certain
Christians, the Emperor Julian, we say, understood better than Dupuis and Volney
the symbolic worship of the sun. In his hymn to the king, Helios, he recognizes
that the star of day is but the reflection and the material shadow of that sun
of truth which illumines the world of intelligence, and which is itself only a
light borrowed from the Absolute.
It is a remarkable thing that Julian has ideas of the Supreme God, that the
Christians thought they alone adored, much greater and more correct than those
of some of the fathers of the Church, who were his contemporaries, and his
adversaries.
This is how he expresses himself in his defence of Hellenism:
"It is not sufficient to write in a book that God spake, and things were made.
It is necessary to examine whether the things that one attributes to God are not
contrary to the very laws of Being. For, if it is so, God could not have made
them, for He could not contradict Nature without denying Himself. ... God being
eternal, it is of the nature of necessity that His orders should be immutable as
He."
So spake that apostate, that man of impiety! Yet, later, a Christian doctor,
become the oracle of the theological schools, taking his inspiration perhaps
from these splendid words of the misbeliever, found himself obliged to bridle
superstition by writing that beautiful and brave maxim which easily resumes the
thought of the great Emperor: {188}
"A thing is not just because God wills it; but God wills it because it is just."
The idea of a perfect and immutable order in nature, the notion of an ascending
hierarchy and of a descending influence in all beings, had furnished to the
ancient hierophants the first classification of the whole of natural history.
Minerals, vegetables, animals were studied analogically; and they attributed
their origin and their properties to the passive or to the active principle, to
the darkness or to the light. The sign of their election or of their
reprobation, traced in their natural form, became the hieroglyphic character of
a vice or a virtue; then, by dint of taking the sign for the thing, and
expressing the thing by the sign, they ended by confounding them. Such is the
origin of that fabulous natural history, in which lions allow themselves to be
defeated by cocks, where dolphins die of sorrow for the ingratitude of men, in
which mandrakes speak, and the stars sing. This enchanted world is indeed the
poetic domain of magic; but it has no other reality than the meaning of the
hieroglyphs which gave it birth. For the sage who understands the analogies of
the transcendental Qabalah, and the exact relation of ideas with signs, this
fabulous country of the fairies is a country still fertile in discoveries; for
those truths which are too beautiful, or too simple to please men, without any
veil, have all been hidden in these ingenious shadows.
Yes, the cock can intimidate the lion, and make himself master of him, because
vigilance often supplants force, and succeeds in taming wrath. The other fables
of the sham natural history of the ancients are explained in the same manner,
and in this allegorical use of analogies, one can {189} already understand the
possible abuses and predict the errors to which the Qabalah was obliged to give
birth.
The law of analogies, in fact, has been for qabalists of a secondary rank the
object of a blind and fanatical faith. It is to this belief that one must
attribute all the superstitions with which the adepts of occult science have
been reproached. This is how they reasoned:
The sign expresses the thing.
The thing is the virtue of the sign.
There is an analogical correspondence between the sign and the thing signified.
The more perfect is the sign, the more entire is the correspondence.
To say a word is to evoke a thought and make it present. To name God is to
manifest God.
The word acts upon souls, and souls react upon bodies; consequently one can
frighten, console, cause to fall ill, cure, even kill, and raise from the dead
by means of words.
To utter a name is to create or evoke a being.
In the name is contained the "verbal" or spiritual doctrine of the being itself.
When the soul evokes a thought, the sign of that thought is written
automatically in the light.
To invoke is to adjure, that is to say, to swear by a name; it is to perform an
act of faith in that name, and to communicate in the virtue which it represents.
Words in themselves are, then, good or evil, poisonous or wholesome.
The most dangerous words are vain and lightly uttered words, because they are
the voluntary abortions of thought. {190}
A useless word is a crime against the spirit of intelligence; it is an
intellectual infanticide.
Things are for every one what he makes of them by naming them. The "word" of
every one is an impression or an habitual prayer.
To speak well is to live well.
A fine style is an aureole of holiness.
From these principles, some true, others hypothetical, and from the more or less
exaggerated consequences that they draw from them, there resulted for
superstitious qabalists and absolute confidence in enchantments, evocations,
conjurations and mysterious prayers. Now, as faith has always accomplished
miracles, apparitions, oracles, mysterious cures, sudden and strange maladies,
have never been lacking to it.
It is thus that a simple and sublime philosophy has become the secret science of
Black Magic. It is from this point of view above all that the Qabalah is still
able to excite the curiosity of the majority in our so distrustful and so
credulous century. However, as we have just explained, that is not the true
science.
Men rarely seek the truth from its own sake; they have always a secret motive in
their efforts, some passion to satisfy, or some greed to assuage. Among the
secrets of the Qabalah there is one above all which has always tormented
seekers; it is the secret of the transmutation of metals, and of the conversion
of all earthly substances into gold.
Alchemy borrowed all these signs from the Qabalah, and it is upon the law of
analogies resulting from the harmony of contraries that it based its operations.
An immense physical secret was, moreover, hidden under the qabalistic {191}
parables of the ancients. This secret we have arrived at deciphering, and we
shall submit its letter to the investigations of the gold- makers. Here it is:
1 Degree. The four imponderable fluids are nothing but the diverse
manifestations of one same universal agent, which is light.
2 Degree. Light is the fire which serves for the Great Work under the form of
electricity.
3 Degree. The human will directs the vital light by means of the nervous system.
In our days this is called Magnetism.
4 Degree. The secret agent of the Great Work, the Azoth of the sages, the living
and life-giving gold of the philosophers, the universal metallic productive
agent, is MAGNETIZED ELECTRICITY.<<In this joke, Levi indicates that he really
knew the Great Arcanum; but only those who also possess it can recognize it, and
enjoy the joke. --- O.M.>>
The alliance of these two words still does not tell us much, and yet, perhaps,
they contain a force sufficient to overturn the world. We say "perhaps" on
philosophical grounds, for, personally, we have no doubt whatever of the high
importance of this great hermetic arcanum.
We have just said that alchemy is the daughter of the Qabalah; to convince
oneself of the truth of this it is sufficient to look at the symbols of Flamel,
of Basil Valentine, the pages of the Jew Abraham, and the more or less
apocryphal oracles of the Emerald Table of Hermes. Everywhere one finds the
traces of that decade of Pythagoras, which is so magnificently applied in the
Sepher Yetzirah to the complete and absolute notion of divine things, that
decade composed of unity and a triple ternary which the Rabbis have {192} called
the Berashith, and the Mercavah, the luminous tree of the Sephiroth, and the key
of the Shemhamphorash.
We have spoken at some length in our book entitled "Dogme et rituel de la haute
magie" of a hieroglyphic monument (preserved up to our own time under a futile
pretext) which alone explains all the mysterious writings of high initiation.
This monument is that Tarot of the Bohemians which gave rise to our games of
cards. It is composed of twenty-two allegorical letters, and of four series of
ten hieroglyphs each, referring to the four letters of the name of Jehovah. The
diverse combinations of those signs, and the numbers which correspond to them,
form so many qabalistic oracles, so that the whole science is contained in this
mysterious book. This perfectly simple philosophical machine astonishes by the
depth of its results.
The Abbe Trithemius, one of our greatest masters in magic, composed a very
ingenious work, which he calls Polygraphy,<<WEH NOTE: This is more widely known
as the "Stegonographia".>> upon the qabalistic alphabet. It is a combined series
of progressive alphabets where each letter represents a word, the words
correspond to each other, and complete themselves from one alphabet to another;
and there is no doubt that Trithemius was acquainted with the Tarot, and made
use of it to set his learned combinations in logical order.
Jerome Cardan was acquainted with the symbolical alphabet of the initiates, as
one may recognize by the number and disposition of the chapters of his work on
Subtlety. This work, in fact, is composed of twenty-two chapters, and the
subject of each chapter is analogous to the number and to the allegory of the
corresponding card of the Tarot. We {193} have made the same observation on a
book of St. Martin entitled "A Natural Picture of the Relations which exist
between God, Man and the Universe." The tradition of this secret has, then,
never been interrupted from the first ages of the Qabalah to our own times.<<WEH
NOTE: Add to this the illustrations by William Blake for the Book of Job.
Counting the title page as zero for the Fool Trump, there are 22 illustrations
numbered to match the Major Trumps, with a few actually employing traditional
design elements from the corresponding Trumps.>>
The table-turners, and those who make the spirits speak with alphabetical
charts, are, then, a good many centuries behind the times; they do not know that
there exists an oracular instrument whose words are always clear and always
accurate, by means of which one can communicate with the seven genii of the
planets, and make to speak at will the seventy-two wheels of Assiah, of
Yetzirah, and of Briah. For that purpose it is sufficient to understand the
system of universal analogies, such as Swedenborg has set it forth in the
hieroglyphic key of the arcana; then to mix the cards together, and draw from
them by chance, always grouping them by the numbers corresponding to the ideas
on which one desires enlightenment; then, reading the oracles as qabalistic
writings ought to be read, that is to say, beginning in the middle and going
from right to left for odd numbers, beginning on the right for even numbers, and
interpreting successively the number for the letter which corresponds to it, the
grouping of the letters by the addition of their numbers, and all the successive
oracles by their numerical order, and their hieroglyphic relations.
This operation of the qabalistic sages, originally intended to discover the
rigorous development of absolute ideas, degenerated into superstition when it
fell into the hands of the ignorant priests and the nomadic ancestors of the
Bohemians who possessed the Tarot in the Middle Ages; {194} they did not know
how to employ it properly, and used it solely for fortune-telling.
The game of chess, attributed to Palamedes, has no other origin than the
Tarot,<<WEH NOTE: These theories of the history of Tarot and Chess are worthless
18th century fables. The "Bohemians", by which Levi means the Gypsies, did not
arrive in Europe until centuries after the appearance of Tarot. Tarot may have
imitated chess, but the antiquity of the latter precludes any influence by the
former.>> and one finds there the same combinations and the same symbols: the
king, the queen, the knight, the soldier, the fool, the tower, and houses
representing numbers. In old times, chess-players sought upon their chess-board
the solution of philosophical and religious problems, and argued silently with
each other in manoeuvring the hieroglyphic characters across the numbers.<<WEH
NOTE: The Order of the Golden Dawn may have designed Enochian Chess on this
suggestion.>> Our vulgar game of goose, revived from the old Grecian game, and
also attributed to Palamedes, is nothing but a chess-board with motionless
figures and numbers movable by means of dice. It is a Tarot disposed in the form
of a wheel, for the use of aspirants to initiation. Now, the word Tarot, in
which one finds "rota" and "tora," itself expresses, as William Postel has
demonstrated, this primitive disposition in the form of a wheel.
The hieroglyphs of the game of goose are simpler than those of the Tarot, but
one finds the same symbols in it: the juggler, the king, the queen, the tower,
the devil or Typhon, death, and so on. The dice-indicated chances of the game
represent those of life, and conceal a highly philosophical sense sufficiently
profound to make sages meditate, and simple enough to be understood by children.
The allegorical personage Palamedes, is, however, identical with Enoch, Hermes,
and Cadmus, to whom various mythologies have attributed the invention of
letters. But, in the conception of Homer, Palamedes, the man who exposed the
fraud of Ulysses and fell a victim to his revenge, represents {195} the
initiator or the man of genius whose eternal destiny is to be killed by those
whom he initiates. The disciple does not become the living realization of the
thoughts of the Master until he had drunk his blood and eaten his flesh, to use
the energetic and allegorical expression of the initiator, so ill understood by
Christians.
The conception of the primitive alphabet was, as one may easily see, the idea of
a universal language which should enclose in its combinations, and even in its
signs themselves, the recapitulation and the evolutionary law of all sciences,
divine and human. In our own opinion, nothing finer or greater has ever been
dreamt by the genius of man; and we are convinced that the discovery of this
secret of the ancient world has fully repaid us for so many years of sterile
research and thankless toil in the crypts of lost sciences and the cemeteries of
the past.
One of the first results of this discovery should be to give a new direction to
the study of the hieroglyphic writings as yet so imperfectly deciphered by the
rivals and successors of M. Champollion.
The system of writing of the disciples of Hermes being analogical and
synthetical, like all the signs of the Qabalah, would it not be useful, in order
to read the pages engraved upon the stones of the ancient temples, to replace
these stones in their place, and to count the numbers of their letters,
comparing them with the numbers of other stones?
The obelisk of Luxor, for example, was it not one of the two columns at the
entrance of a temple? Was it at the right-hand or the left-hand pillar? If at
the right, these signs refer to the active principle; if at the left, it is by
the passive principle {196} that one must interpret its characters. But there
should be an exact correspondence of one obelisk with the other, and each sign
should receive its complete sense from the analogy of contraries. M. Champollion
found Coptic in the hieroglyphics, another savant would perhaps find more
easily, and more fortunately, Hebrew; but what would one say if it were neither
Hebrew nor Coptic? If it were, for example, the universal primitive language?
Now, this language, which was that of the transcendental Qabalah, did certainly
exist; more, it still exists at the base of Hebrew itself, and of all the
oriental languages which derive from it; this language is that of the sanctuary,
and the columns at the entrance of the temples ordinarily contained all its
symbols. The intuition of the ecstatics comes nearer to the truth with regard to
these primitive signs that even the science of the learned, because, as we have
said, the universal vital fluid, the astral light, being the mediating principle
between the ideas and the forms, is obedient to the extraordinary leaps of the
soul which seeks the unknown, and furnishes it naturally with the signs already
found, but forgotten, of the great revelations of occultism. Thus are formed the
pretended signatures of spirits, thus were produced the mysterious writings of
Gablidone, who appeared to Dr. Lavater, the phantoms of Schroepfer, of St.
Michel-Vintras, and the spirits of Mr. Home.
If electricity can move a light, or even a heavy body, without one touching it,
is it impossible to give by magnetism a direction to electricity, and to
produce, thus naturally, signs and writings? One can do it, doubtless; because
one does it. {197}
Thus, then, to those who ask us, "What is the most important agent of miracles?"
we shall reply ---
"It is the first matter of the Great Work.
"It is MAGNETIZED ELECTRICITY."
Everything has been created by light.
It is in light that form is preserved.
It is by light that form reproduces itself.
The vibrations of light are the principle of universal movement.
By light, the suns are attached to each other, and they interlace their rays
like chains of electricity.
Men and things are magnetized by light like the suns, and, by means of
electro-magnetic chains whose tension is caused by sympathies and affinities,
are able to communicate with each other from one end of the world to the other,
to caress or strike, wound or heal, in a manner doubtless natural, but
invisible, and of the nature of prodigy.
There is the secret of magic.
Magic, that science which comes to us from the magi!
Magic, the first of sciences!
Magic, the holiest science, because it establishes in the sublimest manner the
great religious truths!
Magic, the most calumniated of all, because the vulgar obstinately confound
magic with the superstitious sorcery whose abominable practices we have
denounced!
It is only by magic that one can reply to the enigmatical questions of the
Sphinx of Thebes, and find the solution of those problems of religious history
which are sealed in the sometimes scandalous obscurities which are to be found
in the stories of the Bible. {198}
The sacred historians themselves recognize the existence and the power of the
magic which boldly rivalled that of Moses.
The Bible tells us that Jannes and Jambres, Pharaoh's magicians, at first
performed "the same miracles" as Moses, and that they declared those which they
could not imitate impossible to human science. It is in fact more flattering to
the self-love of a charlatan to deem that a miracle has taken place, than to
declare himself conquered by the science or skill of a fellow-magician --- above
all, when he is a political enemy or a religious adversary.
When does the possible in magical miracles begin and end? Here is a serious and
important question. What is certain is the existence of the facts which one
habitually describes as miracles. Magnetizers and sleep-wakers do them every
day; Sister Rose Tamisier did them; the "illuminated" Vintras does them still;
more than fifteen thousand witnesses recently attested those of the American
mediums; ten thousand peasants of Berry and Sologne would attest, if need were,
those of the god Cheneau (a retired button-merchant who believes himself
inspired by God). Are all these people hallucinated or knaves? Hallucinated,
yes, perhaps, but the very fact that their hallucination is identical, whether
separately or collectively, is it not a sufficiently great miracle on the part
of him who produces it, always, at will, and at a stated time and place?
To do miracles, and to persuade the multitude that one does them, are very
nearly the same thing, above all in a century as frivolous and scoffing as ours.
Now, the world is full of wonder-makers, and science is often reduced to denying
their works or refusing to see them, in order not to be reduced to examining
them, or assigning a cause to them. {199}
In the last century all Europe resounded with the miracles of Cagliostro. Who is
ignorant of what powers were attributed to his 'wine of Egypt,' and to his
'elixir'? What can we add to the stories that they tell of his other- world
suppers, where he made appear in flesh and blood the illustrious personages of
the past? Cagliostro was, however, far from being an initiate of the first
order, since the Great White Brotherhood abandoned him<<This is no more an
argument than to say that God "abandoned" Christ. Martyrdom is usually cited on
the other side. Besides, the fate of Cagliostro is unknown --- at least to the
world at large. --- O. M.>> to the Roman Inquisition, before whom he made, if
one can believe the documents to his trial, so ridiculous and so odious an
explanation of the Masonic trigram, L.'. P.'. D.'.
But miracles are not the exclusive privilege of the first order of initiates;
they are often performed by beings without education or virtue. Natural laws
find an opportunity in an organism whose exceptional qualifications are not
clear to us, and they perform their work with their invariable precision and
calm. The most refined gourmets appreciate truffles, and employ them for their
purposes, but it is hogs that dig them up: it is analogically the same for
plenty of things less material and less gastronomical: instincts have groping
presentiments, but it is really only science which discovers.
The actual progress of human knowledge has diminished by a great deal the
chances of prodigies, but there still remains a great number, since both the
power of the imagination and the nature and power of magnetism are not yet
known. The observation of universal analogies, moreover, has been neglected, and
for that reason divination is no longer believed in. {200}
A qabalistic sage may, then, still astonish the crowd and even bewilder the
educated:
1 Degree --- By divining hidden things; 2 Degree --- by prediction many things
to come; 3 Degree --- by dominating the will of others so as to prevent them
doing what they will, and forcing them to do what they do not will; 4 Degree ---
by exciting apparitions and dreams; 5 Degree --- by curing a large number of
illnesses; 6 Degree --- by restoring life to subjects who display all the
symptoms of death; 7 Degree --- lastly, by demonstrating (if need be, by
examples) the reality of the philosophical stone, and the transmutation of
metals, according to the secrets of Abraham the Jew, of Flamel, and of Raymond
Lully.
All these prodigies are accomplished by means of a single agent which the Hebrew
calls OD, as did the Chevalier de Reichenback, which we, with the School of
Pasqualis Martinez, call astral light, which Mr. de Mirville calls the devil,
and which the ancient alchemists called Azoth. It is the vital element which
manifests itself by the phenomena of heat, light, electricity and magnetism,
which magnetizes all terrestrial globes, and all living beings.
In this agent even are manifested the proofs of the qabalistic doctrine with
regard to equilibrium and motion, by double polarity; when one pole attracts the
other repels, one produces heat, the other cold, one gives a blue or greenish
light, the other a yellow or reddish light.
This agent, by its different methods of magnetization, attracts us to each
other, or estranges us from each other, subordinates one to the wishes of the
other by causing him to enter his centre of attraction, re-establishes or
disturbs the equilibrium in animal economy by its transmutations and its {201}
alternate currents, receives and transmits the imprints of the force of
imagination which is in men the image and the semblance of the creative word,
and thus produces presentiments and determines dreams. The science of miracles
is then the knowledge of this marvellous force, and the art of doing miracles is
simply the art of magnetizing or "illuminating" beings, according to the
invariable laws of magnetism or astral light.
We prefer the word "light" to the word "magnetism," because it is more
traditional in occultism, and expresses in a more complete and perfect manner
the nature of the secret agent. There is, in truth, the liquid and drinkable
gold of the masters in alchemy; the word "OR" (the French word for "gold") comes
from the Hebrew "AOUR" which signifies "light." "What do you wish?" they asked
the candidate in every initiation: "To see the light," should be their answer.
The name of illuminati which one ordinarily gives to adepts, has then been
generally very badly interpreted by giving to it a mystical sense, as if it
signified men whose intelligence believes itself to be lighted by a miraculous
day. 'Illuminati' means simply, knowers and possessors of the light, either by
the knowledge of the great magical agent, or by the rational and ontological
notion of the absolute.
The universal agent is a force tractable and subordinate to intelligence.
Abandoned to itself, it, like Moloch, devours rapidly all that to which it gives
birth, and changes the superabundance of life into immense destruction. It is,
then, the infernal serpent of the ancient myths, the Typhon of the Egyptians,
and the Moloch of Phoenicia; but if Wisdom, mother of the Elohim, puts her foot
upon his head, she outwears {202} all the flames which he belches forth, and
pours with full hands upon the earth a vivifying light. Thus also it is said in
the Zohar that at the beginning of our earthly period, when the elements
disputed among themselves the surface of the earth, that fire, like an immense
serpent, had enveloped everything in its coils, and was about to consume all
beings, when divine clemency, raising around it the waves of the sea like a
vestment of clouds, put her foot upon the head of the serpent and made him
re-enter the abyss. Who does not see in this allegory the first idea, and the
most reasonable explanation, of one of the images dearest to Catholic symbolism,
the triumph of the Mother of God?
The qabalists say that the occult name of the devil, his true name, is that of
Jehovah written backwards. This, for the initiate, is a complete revelation of
the mysteries of the tetragram. In fact, the order of the letters of that great
name indicates the predominance of the idea over form, of the active over the
passive, of cause over effect. By reversion that order one obtains the contrary.
Jehovah is he who tames Nature as it were a superb horse and makes it go where
he will; Chavajoh (the demon) is the horse without a bridle who, like those of
the Egyptians of the song of Moses, falls upon its rider, and hurls him beneath
it, into the abyss.
The devil, then, exists really enough for the qabalists; but it is neither a
person nor a distinguished power of even the forces of Nature. The devil is
dispersion, or the slumber of the intelligence. It is madness and falsehood.
Thus are explained the nightmares of the Middle Ages; thus, too, are explained
the bizarre symbols of some initiates, those of the Templars, for example, who
are much less to be {203} blamed for having worshipped Baphomet, than for
allowing its image to be perceived by the profane. Baphomet, pantheistic figure
of the universal agent, is nothing else than the bearded devil of the
alchemists. One knows that the members of the highest grades in the old hermetic
masonry attributed to a bearded demon the accomplishment of the Great Work. At
this word, the vulgar hastened to cross themselves, and to hide their eyes, but
the initiates of the cult of Hermes-Pantheos understood the allegory, and were
very careful not to explain it to the profane.
Mr. de Mirville, in a book to-day almost forgotten, though it made some noise a
few months ago, gives himself a great deal of trouble to compile an account of
various sorceries, of the kind which fill the compilations of people like
Delancre, Delrio, and Bodin. He might have found better than that in history.
And without speaking of the easily attested miracles of the Jansenists of Port
Royal, and of the Deacon Paris, what is more marvellous than the great monomania
of martyrdom which has made children, and even women, during three hundred
years, go to execution as if to a feast? What more magnificent than that
enthusiastic faith accorded during so many centuries to the most
incomprehensible, and, humanly speaking, to the most revolting mysteries? On
this occasion, you will say, the miracles came from God, and one even employs
them as a proof of the truth of religion. But, what? heretics, too, let
themselves be killed for dogmas, this time quite frankly and really absurd. They
then sacrificed both their reason and their life to their belief? Oh, for
heretics, it is evident that the devil was responsible. Poor folk, who took the
devil for God, and God for the devil! Why have {204} they not been undeceived by
making them recognize the true God by the charity, the knowledge, the justice,
and above all, by the mercy of his ministers?
The necromancers who cause the devil to appear after a fatiguing and almost
impossible series of the most revolting evocations, are only children by the
side of that St. Anthony of the legend who drew them from hell by thousands, and
dragged them everywhere after him, like Orpheus, who attracted to him oaks,
rocks and the most savage animals.
Callot alone, initiated by the wandering Bohemians during his infancy into the
mysteries of black sorcery, was able to understand and reproduce the evocations
of the first hermit. And do you think that in retracing those frightful dreams
of maceration and fasting, the makers of legends have invented? No; they have
remained far below the truth. The cloisters, in fact, have always been peopled
with nameless spectres, and their walls have palpitated with shadows and
infernal larvae. St. Catherine of Siena on one occasion passed a week in the
midst of an obscene orgy which would have discouraged the lust of Pietro di
Aretino; St. Theresa felt herself carried away living into hell, and there
suffered, between walls which ever closed upon her, tortures which only
hysterical women will be able to understand. ... All that, one will say,
happened in the imagination of the sufferers. But where, then, would you expect
facts of a supernatural order to take place? What is certain is that all these
visionaries have seen and touched, that they have had the most vivid feeling of
a formidable reality. We speak of it from our own experience, and there are
visions of our own first youth, passed in retreat and asceticism, whose memory
makes us shudder even now. {205}
God and the devil are the ideals of absolute good and evil. But man never
conceives absolute evil, save as a false idea of good. Good only can be
absolute; and evil is only relative to our ignorance, and to our errors. Every
man, in order to be a God, first makes himself a devil; but as the law of
solidarity is universal, the hierarchy exists in hell as it does in heaven. A
wicked man will always find one more wicked than himself to do him harm; and
when the evil is at its climax, it must cease, for it could only continue by the
annihilation of being, which is impossible. Then the man-devils, at the end of
their resources, fall once more under the empire of the god-men, and are saved
by those whom one at first thought their victims; but the man who strives to
live a life of evil deeds, does homage to good by all the intelligence and
energy that he develops in himself. For this reason the great initiator said in
his figurative language: "I would that thou wert cold or hot; but because thou
art lukewarm, I will spew thee out of my mouth."
The Great Master, in one of his parables, condemns only the idle man who buried
his treasure from fear of losing it in the risky operations of that bank which
we call life. To think nothing, to love nothing, to wish for nothing, to do
nothing --- that is the real sin. Nature only recognizes and rewards workers.
The human will develops itself and increases itself by its own activity. In
order to will truly, one must act. Action always dominates inertia and drags it
at its chariot wheels. This is the secret of the influence of the alleged wicked
over the alleged good. How many poltroons and cowards think themselves virtuous
because they are afraid to be otherwise! {206} How many respectable women cast
an envious eye upon prostitutes! It is not very long ago since convicts were in
fashion. Why? Do you think that public opinion can ever give homage to vice? No,
but it can do justice to activity and bravery, and it is right that cowardly
knaves should esteem bold brigands.
Boldness united to intelligence is the mother of all successes in this world. To
undertake, one must know; to accomplish, one must will; to will really, one must
dare; and in order to gather in peace the fruits of one's audacity, one must
keep silent.
TO KNOW, TO DARE, TO WILL, TO KEEP SILENT, are, as we have said elsewhere, the
four qabalistic words which correspond to the four letters of the tetragram and
to the four hieroglyphic forms of the Sphinx. To know, is the human head; to
dare, the claws of the lion; to will, the mighty flanks of the bull; to keep
silent, the mystical wings of the eagle. He only maintains his position above
other men who does not prostitute the secrets of his intelligence to their
commentary and their laughter.
All men who are really strong are magnetizers, and the universal agent obeys
their will. It is thus that they work marvels. They make themselves believed,
they make themselves followed, and when they say, "This is thus," Nature changes
(in a sense) to the eyes of the vulgar, and becomes what the great man wished.
"This is my flesh and this is my blood," said a Man who had made himself God by
his virtues; and eighteen centuries, in the presence of a piece of bread and a
little wine, have seen, touched, tasted and adored flesh and blood made divine
by martyrdom! Say now, that the human will accomplishes no miracles! {207}
Do not let us here speak of Voltaire! Voltaire was not a wonder-worker, he was
the witty and eloquent interpreter of those on whom the miracle no longer acted.
Everything in his work is negative; everything was affirmative, on the contrary,
in that of the "Galilean," as an illustrious and too unfortunate Emperor called
Him.
And yet Julian in his time attempted more than Voltaire could accomplish; he
wished to oppose miracles to miracles, the austerity of power to that of revolt,
virtues to virtues, wonders to wonders; the Christians never had a more
dangerous enemy, and they recognized the fact, for Julian was assassinated; and
the Golden Legend still bears witness that a holy martyr, awakened in his tomb
by the clamour of the Church, resumed his arms, and struck the Apostate in the
darkness, in the midst of his army and of his victories. Sorry martyrs, who rise
from the dead to become hangmen! Too credulous Emperor, who believed in his
gods, and in the virtues of the past!
When the kings of France were hedged around with the adoration of their people,
when they were regarded as the Lord's anointed, and the eldest sons of the
Church, they cured scrofula. A man who is the fashion can always do miracles
when he wishes. Cagliostro may have been only a charlatan, but as soon as
opinion had made of him "the divine Cagliostro," he was expected to work
miracles; and they happened.
When Cephas Barjona was nothing but a Jew proscribed by Nero, retailing to the
wives of slaves a specific for eternal life, Cephas Barjona, for all educated
people of Rome
, was only a charlatan; but public opinion made an apostle of the {208}
Spiritualistic empiric; and the successors of Peter, were they Alexander VI, or
even John XXII, are infallible for every man who is properly brought up, who
does not wish to put himself uselessly outside the pale of society. So goes the
world.
Charlatanism, when it is successful, is then, in magic as in everything else, a
great instrument of power. To fascinate the mob cleverly, is not that already to
dominate it? The poor devils of sorcerers who in the Middle Ages stupidly got
themselves burnt alive had not, it is easy to see, a great empire on others.
Joan of Arc was a magician at the head of her armies, and at Rouen the poor girl
was not even a witch. She only knew how to pray, and how to fight, and the
prestige which surrounded her ceased as soon as she was in chains. Does history
tell us that the King of France demanded her release? That the French nobility,
the people, the army protested against her condemnation? The Pope, whose eldest
son was the King of France, did he excommunicate the executioners of the Maid of
Orleans? No, nothing of all that! Joan of Arc was a sorceress for every one as
soon as she ceased to be a magician, and it was certainly not the English alone
who burned her. When one exercises an apparently superhuman power, one must
exercise it always, or resign oneself to perish. The world always avenges itself
in a cowardly way for having believed too much, admired too much, and above all,
obeyed too much.
We only understand magic power in its application to great matters. If a true
practical magician does not make himself master of the world, it is that he
disdains it. To what, then, would he degrade his sovereign power? "I will give
{209} thee all the kingdoms of the world, if thou wilt fall at my feet and
worship me," the Satan of the parable said to Jesus. "Get thee behind me,
Satan," replied the Saviour; "for it is written, Thou shalt adore God alone."
... "ELI, ELI, LAMA SABACHTHANI!" was what this sublime and divine adorer of God
cried later. If he had replied to Satan, "I will not adore thee, and it is thou
who wilt fall at my feet, for I bid thee in the name of intelligence and eternal
reason," he would not have consigned his holy and noble life to the most
frightful of all tortures. The Satan of the mountain was indeed cruelly avenged!
The ancients called practical magic the sacerdotal and royal art, and one
remembers that the magi were the masters of primitive civilization, because they
were the masters of all the science of their time.
To know is to be able when one dares to will.
The first science of the practical qabalist, or the magus, is the knowledge of
men. Phrenology, psychology, chiromancy, the observation of tastes and of
movement, of the sound of the voice and of either sympathetic or antipathetic
impressions, are branches of this art, and the ancients were not ignorant of
them. Gall and Spurzheim in our days have rediscovered phrenology. Lavater,
following Porta, Cardan, Taisnier, Jean Belot and some others have divined anew
rather than rediscovered the science of psychology; chiromancy is still occult,
and one scarcely finds traces of it in the quite recent and very interesting
work of d'Arpentigny. In order to have sufficient notions of it, one must
remount to the qabalistic sources themselves from which the learned Cornelius
Agrippa drew water. It is, then, convenient to say a few words {210} on the
subject while waiting for the work of our friend Desbarrolles.
The hand is the instrument of action in man: it is, like the face, a sort of
synthesis of the nervous system, and should also have features and physiognomy.
The character of the individual is traced there by undeniable signs. Thus, among
hands, some are laborious, some are idle, some square and heavy, others
insinuating and light. Hard and dry hands are made for strife and toil, soft and
damp hands ask only for pleasure. Pointed fingers are inquisitive and mystical,
square fingers mathematical, spatulated fingers obstinate and ambitious.
The thumb, pollex, the finger of force and power, corresponds in the qabalistic
symbolism to the first letter of the name of Jehovah. This finger is then a
synthesis of the hand: if it is strong, the man is morally strong; if it is
weak, the man is weak. It has three phalanges, of which the first is hidden in
the palm of the hand, as the imaginary axis of the world traverses the thickness
of the earth. This first phalanx corresponds to the physical life, the second to
the intelligence, the third to the will. Greasy and thick palms denote sensual
tastes and great force of physical life; a thumb which is long, especially in
its last phalanx, reveals a strong will, which may go as far as despotism; short
thumbs, on the contrary, show characters gentle and easily controlled.
The habitual folds of the hand determine its lines. These lines are, then, the
traces of habits, and the patient observer will know how to recognize them and
how to judge them. The man whose hand folds badly is clumsy or unhappy. The hand
has three principal functions: to grasp, to hold, and to {211} handle. The
subtlest hands seize and handle best; hard and strong hands hold longer. Even
the lightest wrinkles bear witness to the habitual sensations of the organ. Each
finger has, besides, a special function from which it takes its name. We have
already spoken of the thumb; the index is the finger which points out, it is
that of the word and of prophecy; the medius dominates the whole hand, it is
that of destiny; the ring-finger is that of alliances and of honours:
chiromancers have consecrated it to the sun; the little finger is insinuating
and talkative, at least, so say simple folk and nursemaids, whose little finger
tells them so much. The hand has seven protuberances which the qabalists,
following natural analogies, have attributed to the seven planets: that of the
thumb, to Venus; that of the index to Jupiter; that of the medius, to Saturn;
that of the ring-finger to the Sun; that of the little finger, to Mercury; the
two others to Mars and to the Moon. According to their form and their
predominance, they judged the inclinations, the aptitudes, and consequently the
probable destinies of the individuals who submitted themselves to their
judgment.
There is no vice which does not leave its trace, no virtue which has not its
sign. Thus, for the trained eyes of the observer, no hypocrisy is possible. One
will understand that such a science is already a power indeed sacerdotal and
royal.
The prediction of the principal events of life is already possible by means of
the numerous analogical probabilities of this observation: but there exists a
faculty called that of presentiments or sensitivism. Events exist often in their
causes before realizing themselves in action; sensitives see in advance {212}
the effects in the causes. Previous to all great events, there have been most
astonishing predictions. In the reign of Louis Philippe we heard sleep-walkers
and ecstatics announce the return of the Empire, and specify the date of its
coming. The Republic of 1848 was clearly announced in the prophecy of Orval,
which dated at least from 1830 and which we strongly suspect to be, like those
works attributed to the brothers Olivarius, the posthumous work of Mlle.
Lenormand. This is a matter of little importance in this thesis.
That magnetic light which causes the future to appear, also causes things at
present existing, but hidden, to be guessed; as it is the universal life, it is
also the agent of human sensibility, transmitting to some the sickness or the
health of others, according to the fatal influence of contracts, or the laws of
the will. It is that which explains the power of benedictions and of
bewitchments so clearly recognized by the great adepts, and above all by the
wonderful Paracelsus. An acute and judicious critic, Mr. Ch. Fauvety, in an
article published by the "Revue philosophique et religieuse," appreciates in a
remarkable manner the advanced works of Paracelsus, of Pomponacius, of
Goglienus, or Crollis, and of Robert Fludd on magnetism. But what our learned
friend and collaborator studies only as a philosophical curiosity, Paracelsus
and his followers practised without being very anxious that the world should
understand it; for it was for them one of those traditional secrets with regard
to which silence is necessary, and which it is sufficient to indicate to those
who know, leaving always a veil upon the truth for the ignorant.
Now here is what Paracelsus reserved for initiates alone, {213} and what we have
understood through deciphering the qabalistic characters, and the allegories of
which he makes use in his work:
The human soul is material; the divine "mens" is offered to it to immortalize it
and to make it live spiritually and individually, but its natural substance is
fluidic and collective.
There are, then, in man, two lives: the individual or reasonable life, and the
common or instinctive life. It is by this latter that one can live in the bodies
of others, since the universal soul, of which each nervous organism has a
separate consciousness, is the same for all.
We live in a common and universal life in the embryonic state, in ecstasy, and
in sleep. In sleep, in fact, reason does not act, and logic, when it mingles in
our dreams, only does so by chance, in accordance with the accidents of purely
physical reminiscences.
In dreams, we have the consciousness of the universal life; we mingle ourselves
with water, fire, air, and earth; we fly like birds; we climb like squirrels; we
crawl like serpents; we are intoxicated with astral light; we plunge into the
common reservoir, as happens in a more complete manner in death; but then (and
it is thus that Paracelsus explains the mysteries of the other life) the wicked,
that is to say, those who have allowed themselves to be dominated by the
instinct of the brute to the prejudice of human reason, are drowned in the ocean
of the common life with all the anguish of eternal death; the others swim upon
it, and enjoy for ever the riches of that fluid gold which they have succeeded
in dominating.
This identity of all physical life permits the stronger {214} souls to possess
themselves of the existence of the others, and to make auxiliaries of them; it
explains sympathetic currents either near or distant, and gives the whole secret
of occult medicine, because the principle of this medicine is the grand
hypothesis of universal analogies, and, attributing all the phenomena of
physical life to the universal agent, teaches that one must act upon the astral
body in order to react upon the material visible body; it teaches also that the
essence of the astral light is a double movement of attraction and repulsion;
just as human bodies attract and repel one another, they can also absorb
themselves, extend one into another, and make exchanges; the ideas or
imaginations of one can influence the form of the other, and subsequently react
upon the exterior body.
Thus are produced the so strange phenomena of maternal impressions, thus the
neighbourhood of invalids gives bad dreams, and thus the soul breathes in
something unwholesome when in the company of fools and knaves.
One may remark that in boarding-schools the children tend to assimilate in
physiognomy; each place of education has, so to speak, a family air which is
peculiar to it. In orphan schools conducted by nuns all the girls resemble each
other, and all take on that obedient and effaced physiognomy which characterizes
ascetic education. Men become handsome in the school of enthusiasm, of the arts,
and of glory; they become ugly in prison, and of sad countenance in seminaries
and in convents.
Here it will be understood we leave Paracelsus, in order that we may investigate
the consequences and applications of his ideas, which are simply those of the
ancient magi, and {215} to study the elements of that physical Qabalah which we
call magic.
According to the qabalistic principles formulated by the school of Paracelsus,
death is nothing but a slumber, ever growing deeper and more definite, a slumber
which it would not be impossible to stop in its early stages by exercising a
powerful action of will on the astral body as it breaks loose, and by recalling
it to life through some powerful interest or some dominating affection. Jesus
expressed the same thought when he said to the daughter of Jairus: "The maiden
is not dead, but sleepeth"; and of Lazarus: "Our friend is fallen asleep, and I
go to wake him." To express this resurrectionist system in such a manner as not
to offend common sense, by which we mean generally-held opinions, let us say
that death, when there is no destruction or essential alteration of the physical
organs, is always preceded by a lethargy of varying duration. (The resurrection
of Lazarus, if we could admit it as a scientific fact, would prove that this
state may last for four days.<<It will be objected that Lazarus stank, but this
is a thing which happens frequently to healthy people, as well as to sick men,
who recover in spite of it. Besides, in the gospel story, it is one of the
bystanders who says that Lazarus "by this time stinketh, for he hath been dead
four days." One may then attribute this remark to imagination. --- E. L. Rather
to the arrogance of the a priori reasoner. --- TRANS.>>)
Let us now come to the secret of the Great Work, which we have given only in
Hebrew, without vowel points, in the "Rituel de la haute magie." Here is the
complete text in Latin, as one finds in on page 144 of the Sepher Yetzirah,
commented by the alchemist Abraham (Amsterdam, 1642): {216}
SEMITA XXXI
Vocatur intelligentia perpetua; et quare vocatur ita? Eo quod ducit motum solis
et lunae juxta constitutionem eorum; utrumque in orbe sibi conveniente.
Rabbi Abraham F.'. D.'. dicit:
Semita trigesima prima vocatur intelligentia perpetua: et illa ducit solem et
lunam et reliquas stellas et figuras, unum quodque in orbe suo, et impertit
omnibus creatis juxta dispositionem ad signa et figuras.
Here is the French translation of the Hebrew text which we have transcribed in
our ritual:
"The thirty-first path is called the perpetual intelligence; and it governs the
sun and the moon, and the other stars and figures, each in its respective orb.
And it distributes what is needful to all created things, according to their
disposition to the signs and figures."
This text, one sees, is still perfectly obscure for whoever is not acquainted
with the characteristic value of each of the thirty-two paths. The thirty-two
paths are the ten numbers and the twenty-two hieroglyphic letters of the
Qabalah. The thirty-first refers to HB:Shin , which represents the magic lamp,
or the light between the horns of Baphomet. It is the qabalistic sign of the OD,
or astral light, with its two poles, and its balanced centre. One knows that in
the language of the alchemist the sun signifies gold, the moon silver, and that
the other stars or planets refer to the other metals. One {217} should now be
able to understand the thought of the Jew Abraham.
The secret fire of the masters of alchemy was, then, electricity; and there is
the better half of their grand arcanum; but they knew how to equilibrate its
force by a magnetic influence which they concentrated in their athanor. This is
what results from the obscure dogmas of Basil Valentine, of Bernard Trevisan,
and of Henry Khunrath, who, all of them, pretended to have worked the
transmutation, like Raymond Lully, like Arnaud de Villeneuve, and like NIcholas
Flamel.
The universal light, when it magnetizes the worlds, is called astral light; when
it forms the metals, one calls it azoth, or philosophical mercury; when it gives
life to animals, it should be called animal magnetism.
The brute is subject to the fatalities of this light; man is able to direct it.
It is the intelligence which, by adapting the sign to the thought, creates forms
and images.
The universal light is like the divine imagination, and this world, which
changes ceaselessly, yet ever remaining the same with regard to the laws of its
configuration, is the vast dream of God.
Man formulates the light by his imagination; he attracts to himself the light in
sufficient quantities to give suitable forms to his thoughts and even to his
dreams; if this light overcomes him, if he drowns his understanding in the forms
which he evokes, he is mad. But the fluidic atmosphere of madmen is often a
poison for tottering reason and for exalted imaginations.
The forms which the over-excited imagination produces {218} in order to lead
astray the understanding, are as real as photographic images. One could not see
what does not exist. The phantoms of dreams, and even the dreams of the waking,
are then real images which exist in the light.
There exist, besides these, contagious hallucinations. But we here affirm
something more than ordinary hallucinations.
If the images attracted by diseased brains are in some sense real, can they not
throw them without themselves, as real as they relieve them?
These images projected by the complete nervous organism of the medium, can they
not affect the compete organism of those who, voluntarily or not, are in nervous
sympathy with the medium?
The things accomplished by Mr. Home prove that all this is possible.
Now, let us reply to those who think that they see in these phenomena
manifestations of the other world and facts of necromancy.
We shall borrow our answer from the sacred book of the qabalists, and in this
our doctrine is that of the rabbis who compiled the Zohar.
AXIOM
The spirit clothes itself to descend, and strips itself to rise.
In fact:
Why are created spirits clothed with bodies?
It is that they must be limited in order to have a possible existence. Stripped
of all body, and become consequently {219} without limit, created spirits would
lose themselves in the infinite, and from lack of the power to concentrate
themselves somewhere, they would be dead and impotent everywhere, lost as they
would be in the immensity of God.
All created spirits have, then, bodies, some subtler, some grosser, according to
the surroundings in which they are called to live.
The soul of a dead man would, then, not be able to live in the atmosphere of the
living, any more than we can live in earth or in water.
For an airy, or rather an ethereal, spirit, it would be necessary to have an
artificial body similar to the apparatus of our divers, in order that it might
come to us.
All that we can see of the dead are the reflections which they have left in the
atmospheric light, light whose imprints we evoke by the sympathy of our
memories.
The souls of the dead are above our atmosphere. Our respirable air becomes earth
for them. This is what the Saviour declares in His Gospel, when He makes the
soul of a saint say:
"Now the great abyss is established between us, and those who are above can no
longer descend to those who are below."
The hands which Mr. Home causes to appear are, then, composed of air coloured by
the reflection which his sick imagination attracts and projects.<<"The luminous
agent being also that of heat, one understands the sudden variations of
temperature occasioned by the abnormal projections or sudden absorptions of the
light. There follows a sudden atmospheric perturbation, which produces the noise
of storms, and the creaking of woodwork." --- E. L.>> {220}
One touches them as one sees them; half illusion, half magnetic and nervous
force.
These, it seems to us, are very precise and very clear explanations.
Let us reason a little with those who support the theory of apparitions from
another world:
Either those hands are real bodies, or they are illusions.
If they are bodies, they are, then, not spirits.
If they are illusions produced by mirages, either in us, or outside ourselves,
you admit my argument.
Now, one remark!
It is that all those who suffer from luminous congestion or contagious
somnambulism, perish by a violent or, at least, a sudden death.
It is for this reason that one used to attribute to the devil the power of
strangling sorcerers.
The excellent and worthy Lavater habitually evoked the alleged spirit of
Gablidone.
He was assassinated.
A lemonade-seller of Leipzig, Schroepfer, evoked the animated images of the
dead. He blew out his brains with a pistol.
One knows what was the unhappy end of Cagliostro.
A misfortune greater than death itself is the only thing that can save the life
of these imprudent experimenters.
They may become idiots or madmen, and then they do not die, if one watches over
them with care to prevent them from committing suicide.
Magnetic maladies are the road to madness; they are {221} always born from the
hypertrophy or atrophy of the nervous system.
They resemble hysteria, which is one of their varieties, and are often produced
either by excesses of celibacy, or those or exactly the opposite kind.
One knows how closely connected with the brain are the organs charged by Nature
with the accomplishment of her noblest work: those whose object is the
reproduction of being.
One does not violate with impunity the sanctuary of Nature.
Without risking his own life, no one lifts the veil of the great Isis.
Nature is chaste, and it is to chastity that she gives the key of life.
To give oneself up to impure loves is to plight one's troth to death.
Liberty, which is the life of the soul, is only preserved in the order of
Nature. Every voluntary disorder wounds it, prolonged excess murders it.
Then, instead of being guided and preserved by reason, one is abandoned to the
fatalities of the ebb and flow of magnetic light.
The magnetic light devours ceaselessly, because it is always creating, and
because, in order to produce continually, one must absorb eternally.
Thence come homicidal manias and temptations to commit suicide.
Thence comes that spirit of perversity which Edgar Poe has described in so
impressive and accurate a manner, and which Mr. de Mirville would be right to
call the devil. {222}
The devil is the giddiness of the intelligence stupefied by the irresolution of
the heart.
It is a monomania of nothingness, the lure of the abyss; independently of what
it may be according to the decisions of the Catholic, Apostolic, and Roman
faith, which we have not the temerity to touch.
As to the reproduction of signs and characters by that universal fluid, which we
call astral light, to deny its possibility would be to take little account of
the most ordinary phenomena of Nature.
The mirage in the steppes of Russia, the palace of Morgan le Fay, the figures
printed naturally in the heart of stones which Gaffael calls "gamahes," the
monstrous deformities of certain children caused by impressions of the
nightmares of their mothers, all these phenomena and many others prove that the
light is full of reflections and images which it projects and reproduces
according to the evocations of the imagination, of memory, or of desire.
Hallucination is not always an objectless reverie: as soon as every one sees a
thing it is certainly visible; but if this thing is absurd one must rigorously
conclude that everybody is deceived or hallucinated by a real appearance.
To say (for example) that in the magnetic parties of Mr. Home real and living
hands come out of the tables, true hands which some see, others touch, and by
which still others feel themselves touched without seeing them, to say that
these really corporeal hands are hands of spirits, is to speak like children or
madmen; it implies a contradiction in terms. But to deem that such or such
apparitions, such or such sensations, are produced, is simply to be sincere, and
to mock {223} the mockery of the normal man, even when these normal men are as
witty as this or that editor of this or that comic journal.
These phenomena of the light which produce apparitions always appear at epochs
when humanity is in labour. They are phantoms of the delirium of the
world-fever; it is the hysteria of a bored society. Virgil tells us in fine
verse that in the time of Caesar Rome was full of spectres; in the time of
Vespasian the gates of the Temple of Jerusalem opened of themselves, and a voice
was heard crying, "The gods depart." Now, when the gods depart, the devils
return. Religious feeling transforms itself into superstition when faith is
lost; for souls need to believe, because they thirst for hope. How can faith be
lost? How can science doubt the infinite harmony? Because the sanctuary of the
absolute is always closed for the majority. But the kingdom of truth, which is
that of God, suffers violence, and the violent must take it by force. There
exists a dogma, there exists a key, there exists a sublime tradition; and this
dogma, this key, this tradition is transcendental magic. There only are found
the absolute of knowledge and the eternal bases of law, guardian against all
madness, all superstition and all error, the Eden of the intelligence, the ease
of the heart, and the peace of the soul. We do not say this in the hope of
convincing the scoffer, but only to guide the seeker. Courage and good hope to
him; he will surely find, since we ourselves have found.
The magical dogma is not that of the mediums. The mediums who dogmatize can
teach nothing but anarchy, since their inspiration is drawn from a disordered
exaltation. They are always predicting disasters; they deny hierarchical
authority; they pose, like Vintras, as sovereign pontiffs. {224} The initiate,
on the contrary, respects the hierarchy before all, he loves and preserves
order, he bows before sincere beliefs, he loves all signs of immortality in
faith, and of redemption by charity, which is all discipline and obedience. We
have just read a book published under the influence of astral and magnetic
intoxication, and we have been struck by the anarchical tendencies with which it
is filled under a great appearance of benevolence and religion. At the head of
this book one sees the symbol, or, as the magi call it, "the signature," of the
doctrines which it teaches. Instead of the Christian cross, symbol of harmony,
alliance and regularity, one sees the tortuous tendrils of the vine, jutting
from its twisted stem, images of hallucination and of intoxication.
The first ideas set forth by this book are the climax of the absurd. The souls
of the dead, it says, are everywhere, and nothing any longer hems them in. It is
an infinite overcrowded with gods, returning the one into the other. The souls
can and do communicate with us by means of tables and hats. And so, no more
regulated instruction, no more priesthood, no more Church, delirium set upon the
throne of truth, oracles which write for the salvation of the human race the
word attributed to Cambronne, great men who leave the serenity of their eternal
destinies to make our furniture dance, and to hold with us conversations like
those which Beroalde de Verville<<Born in 1538 --- died in 1612. Author of "Le
Moyen de Parvenir." The Bibliophile Jacob suggests that Verville stole his
"Moyen de Parvenir" from a lost book of Rabelais. Verville was a Canon of St.
Gatien, Tours, and is associated with Tours and Touraine. Balzac's "Contes
Drolatiques" were deemed to have been more inspired by Verville than by
Rabelais. --- TRANS.>> makes them hold, in "Le Moyen de Parvenir." All this is a
great pity; and yet, in America, all this is {225} spreading like an
intellectual plague. Young America raves, she has fever; she is, perhaps,
cutting her teeth. But France! France to accept such things! No, it is not
possible, and it is not so. But while they refuse the doctrines, serious men
should observe the phenomena, remain calm in the midst of the agitations of all
the fanaticisms (for incredulity also has its own), and judge after having
examined.
To preserve one's reason in the midst of madmen, one's faith in the midst of
superstitions, one's dignity in the midst of buffoons, and one's independence
among the sheep of Panurge, is of all miracles the rarest, the finest, and the
most difficult to accomplish.
CHAPTER IV
FLUIDIC PHANTOMS AND THEIR MYSTERIES
THE ancients gave different names to these: larvae, lemures (empuses). They
loved the vapour of shed blood, and fled from the blade of the sword.
Theurgy evoked them, and the Qabalah recognized them under the name of
elementary spirits.
They were not spirits, however, for they were mortal.
They were fluidic coagulations which one could destroy by dividing them.
There were a sort of animated mirages, imperfect emanations of human life. The
traditions of Black Magic say that they were born owing to the celibacy of Adam.
Paracelsus says that the vapours of the blood of hysterical women people the air
with phantoms; and these ideas are so ancient, that {226} we find traces of them
in Hesiod, who expressly forbids that linen, stained by a pollution of any sort,
should be dried before a fire.
Persons who are obsessed by phantoms are usually exalted by too rigorous
celibacy, or weakened by excesses.
Fluidic phantoms are the abortions of the vital light; they are plastic media
without body and without spirit, born from the excesses of the spirit and the
disorders of the body.
These wandering media may be attracted by certain degenerates who are fatally
sympathetic to them, and who lend them at their own cost a factitious existence
of a more or less durable kind. They then serve as supplementary instruments to
the instinctive volitions of these degenerates: never to cure them, always to
send them farther astray, and to hallucinate them more and more.
If corporeal embryos can take the forms which the imagination of their mothers
gives them, the wandering fluidic embryos ought to be prodigiously variable, and
to transform themselves with an astonishing facility. Their tendency to give
themselves a body in order to attract a soul, makes them condense and assimilate
naturally the corporeal molecules which float in the atmosphere.
Thus, by coagulating the vapour of blood, they remake blood, that blood which
hallucinated maniacs see floating upon pictures or statues. But they are not the
only ones to see it. Vintras and Rose Tamisier are neither impostors nor
myopics; the blood really flows; doctors examine it, analyse it; it is blood,
real human blood: whence comes it? Can it be formed spontaneously in the
atmosphere? Can it naturally flow from a marble, from a painted canvas or a
host? No, {227} doubtless; this blood did once circulate in veins, then it has
been shed, evaporated, dried, the serum has turned into vapour, the globules
into impalpable dust, the whole has floated and whirled into the atmosphere, and
has then been attracted into the current of a specified electromagnetism. The
serum has again become liquid; it has taken up and imbibed anew the globules
which the astral light has coloured, and the blood flows.
Photography proves to us sufficiently that images are real modifications of
light. Now, there exists an accidental and fortuitous photography which makes
durable impression of mirages wandering in the atmosphere, upon leaves of trees,
in wood, and even in the heart of stones: thus are formed those natural figures
to which Gaffarel has consecrated several pages in his book of "Curiosites
inouies," those stoned to which he attributes an occult virtue, which he calls
"gamalies;" thus are traced those writings and drawings which so greatly
astonish the observers of fluidic phenomena. They are astral photographs traced
by the imagination of the mediums with or without the assistance of the fluidic
larvae.
The existence of these larvae has been demonstrated to us in a preemptory manner
by a rather curious experience. Several persons, in order to test the magic
power of the American Home, asked him to summon up relations which they
pretended they had lost, but, who, in reality, had never existed. The spectres
did not fail to reply to this appeal, and the phenomena which habitually
followed the evocations of the medium were fully manifested.
This experience is sufficient of itself to convict of tiresome credulity and of
formal error those who believe that spirits {228} intervene to produce these
strange phenomena. That the dead may return, it is above all necessary that they
should have existed, and demons would not so easily be the dupes of our
mystifications.
Like all Catholics, we believe in the existence of spirits of darkness, but we
know also that the divine power has given them the darkness for an eternal
prison, and that the Redeemer saw Satan fall from heaven like lightning. If the
demons tempt us, it is by the voluntary complicity of our passions, and it is
not permitted to them to make head against the empire of God, and by stupid and
useless manifestations to disturb the eternal order of Nature.
The diabolical signatures and characters, which are produced without the
knowledge of the medium, are evidently not proofs of a tacit or formal pact
between these degenerates and intelligences of the abyss. These signs have
served from the beginning to express astral vertigo, and remain in a state of
mirage in the reflections of the divulged light. Nature also has its
recollections, and sends to us the same signs to correspond to the same ideas.
In all this, there is nothing either supernatural or infernal.
"How! do you want me to admit," said to us the Cure Charvoz, the first vicar of
Vintras, "that Satan dares to impress his hideous stigmata upon consecrated
materials, which have become the actual body of Jesus Christ?" We declared
immediately, that it was equally impossible for us to pronounce in favour of
such a blasphemy; and yet, as we demonstrated in our articles in the
"Estafette," the signs printed in bleeding characters upon the hosts of Vintras,
regularly consecrated by Charvoz, were those which, in {229} Black Magic, are
absolutely recognized for the signatures of demons.
Astral writings are often ridiculous or obscene. The pretended spirits, when
questioned on the greater mysteries of Nature, often reply by that coarse word
which became, so they say, heroic on one occasion, in the military mouth of
Cambronne. The drawings which pencils will trace if left to their own devices
very often reproduce shapeless phalli, such as the anaemic hooligan, as one
might picturesquely call him, sketches on the hoardings as he whistles, a
further proof of our hypothesis, that wit in no way presides at those
manifestations, and that it would be above all sovereignly absurd to recognize
in them the intervention of spirits released from the bondage of matter.
The Jesuit, Paul Saufidius, who has written on the manners and customs of the
Japanese, tells us a very remarkable story. A troop of Japanese pilgrims one
day, as they were traversing a desert, saw coming toward them a band of spectres
whose number was equal to that of the pilgrims, and which walked at the same
pace. These spectres, at first without shape, and like larvae, took on as they
approached all the appearance of the human body. Soon they met the pilgrims, and
mingled with them, gliding silently between their ranks. Then the Japanese saw
themselves double, each phantom having become the perfect image and, as it were,
the mirage of each pilgrim. The Japanese were afraid, and prostrated themselves,
and the bonze who was conducting them began to pray for them with great
contortions and great cries. When the pilgrims rose up again, the phantoms had
disappeared, and the troop of devotees was able to continue {230} its path in
peace. This phenomenon, whose truth we do not doubt, presents the double
characters of a mirage, and of a sudden projection of astral larvae, occasioned
by the heat of the atmosphere, and the fanatical exhaustion of the pilgrims.
Dr. Brierre de Boismont, in his curious treatise, "Trate des hallucinations,"
tells us that a man, perfectly sane, who had never had visions, was tormented
one morning by a terrible nightmare: he saw in his room a mysterious ape
horrible to behold, who gnashed his teeth upon him, and gave himself over to the
most hideous contortions. He woke with a start, it was already day; he jumped
from his bed, and was frozen with terror on seeing, really present, the
frightful object of his dream. The monkey was there, the exact image of the
monkey of the nightmare, equally absurd, equally terrible, even making the same
grimaces. He could not believe his eyes; he remained nearly half an hour
motionless, observing this singular phenomenon, and asking himself whether he
was delirious or mad. Ultimately, he approached the phantasm to touch it, and it
vanished.
Cornelius Gemma, in his "Histore critique universelle," says that in the year
454, in the island of Candia, the phantom of Moses appeared to some Jews on the
sea-side; on his forehead he had luminous horns, in his hand was his blasting
rod; and he invited them to follow him, showing them with his finger the horizon
in the direction of the Holy Land. The news of this prodigy spread abroad, and
the Israelites rushed towards the shore in a mob. All saw, or pretended to see,
the marvellous apparition: they were, in number, twenty thousand, according to
the chronicler, whom we suspect to be slightly exaggerating in this respect.
Immediately heads {231} grow hot, and imaginations wild; they believe in a
miracle more startling than was of old the passage of the Red Sea. The Jews form
in a close column, and run towards the sea; the rear ranks push the front ranks
frantically: they think they see the pretended Mosses walk upon the water. A
shocking disaster resulted: almost all that multitude was drowned, and the
hallucination was only extinguished with the life of the greater number of those
unhappy visionaries.
Human thought creates what it imagines; the phantoms of superstition project
their deformities on the astral light, and live upon the same terrors which give
them birth. That black giant which reaches its wings from east to west to hide
the light from the world, that monster who devours souls, that frightful
divinity of ignorance and fear --- in a word, the devil, --- is still, for a
great multitude of children of all ages, a frightful reality. In our "Dogme et
rituel de la haute magie" we represented him as the shadow of God, and in saying
that, we still hid the half of our thought: God is light without shadow. The
devil is only the shadow of the phantom of God!
The phantom of God! that last idol of the earth; that anthropomorphic spectre
which maliciously makes himself invisible; that finite personification of the
infinite; that invisible whom one cannot see without dying --- without dying at
least to intelligence and to reason, since in order to see the invisible, one
must be mad; the phantom of Him who has no body; the confused form of Him who is
without form and without limit; it is in "that" that, without knowing it, the
greater number of believers believe. He who "is" essentially, purely,
spiritually, without being either absolute being, or an abstract {232} being, or
the collection of beings, the intellectual infinite in a word, is so difficult
to imagine! Besides, every imagination makes its creator an idolater; he is
obliged to believe in it, and worship it. Our spirit should be silent before
Him, and our heart alone has the right to give Him a name: Our Father!
{233}
BOOK II
MAGICAL MYSTERIES
CHAPTER I
THEORY OF THE WILL
HUMAN life and its innumerable difficulties have for object, in the ordination
of eternal wisdom, the education of the will of man.
The dignity of man consists in doing what he will, and in willing the good, in
conformity with the knowledge of truth.
The good in conformity with the true, is the just.
Justice is the practice of reason.
Reason is the work of reality.
Reality is the science of truth.
Truth is idea identical with being.
Man arrives at the absolute idea of being by two roads, experience and
hypothesis.
Hypothesis is probable when it is necessitated by the teachings of experience;
it is improbable or absurd when it is rejected by this teaching.
Experience is science, and hypothesis is faith.
True science necessarily admits faith; true faith necessarily reckons with
science.
Pascal blasphemed against science, when he said that by reason man could not
arrive at the knowledge of any truth. {234}
In fact, Pascal died mad.
But Voltaire blasphemed no less against science, when he declare that every
hypothesis of faith was absurd, and admitted for the rule of reason only the
witness of the senses.
Moreover, the last word of Voltaire was this contradictory formula: "GOD AND
LIBERTY."
God! that is to say, a Supreme Master, excludes every idea of liberty, as the
school of Voltaire understood it.
And Liberty, by which is meant an absolute independence of any master, which
excludes all idea of God.
The word GOD expresses the supreme personification of law, and by consequence,
of duty; and if by the word LIBERTY, you are willing to accept our
interpretation, THE RIGHT OF DOING ONE'S DUTY, we in our turn will take it for a
motto, and we shall repeat, without contradiction and without error: "GOD AND
LIBERTY."
As there is no liberty for man but in the order which results from the true and
the good, one may say that the conquest of liberty is the great work of the
human soul. Man, by freeing himself from his evil passions and their slavery,
creates himself, as it were, a second time. Nature made him living and
suffering; he makes himself happy and immortal; he thus becomes the
representative of divinity upon earth, and (relatively) exercises its almighty
power.
AXIOM I
Nothing resists the will of man, when he knows the truth, and wills the good.
{235}
AXIOM II
To will evil, is to will death. A perverse will is a beginning of suicide.
AXIOM III
To will good with violence, is to will evil, for violence produces disorder, and
disorder produces evil.
AXIOM IV
One can, and one should, accept evil as the means of good; but one must never
will it or do it, otherwise one would destroy with one hand what one builds with
the other. Good faith never justifies bad means; it corrects them when one
undergoes them, and condemns them when one takes them.
AXIOM V
To have the right to possess always, one must will patiently and long.
AXIOM VI
To pass one's life in willing that it is impossible to possess always, is to
abdicate life and accept the eternity of death.
AXIOM VII
The more obstacles the will surmounts, the stronger it is. It is for this reason
that Christ glorified poverty and sorrow.
AXIOM VIII
When the will is vowed to the absurd, it is reproved by eternal reason.
AXIOM IX
The will of the just man is the will of God himself, and the law of Nature.
{236}
AXIOM X
It is by the will that the intelligence sees. If the will is healthy, the sight
is just. God said: "Let there be light!" and light is; the will says, "Let the
world be as I will to see it!" and the intelligence sees it as the will has
willed. This is the meaning of the word, "So be it,"<<WEH NOTE: id est "Amen".>>
which confirms acts of faith.
AXIOM XI
When one creates phantoms for oneself, one puts vampires into the world, and one
must nourish these children of a voluntary nightmare with one's blood, one's
life, one's intelligence, and one's reason, without ever satisfying them.
AXIOM XII
To affirm and to will what ought to be is to create; to affirm and will what
ought not to be, is to destroy.
AXIOM XIII
Light<<Meaning again the special "light" spoken of previously. --- TRANS.>> is
an electric fire put by Nature at the service of the will; it lights those who
know how to use it, it burns those who abuse it.
AXIOM XIV
The empire of the world is the empire of the light.<<Meaning again the special
"light" spoken of previously. --- TRANS.>>
AXIOM XV
Great intellects whose wills are badly balanced are like comets which are
aborted suns.
AXIOM XVI
To do nothing is as fatal as to do evil, but it is more cowardly. The most
unpardonable of mortal sins is inertia. {237}
AXIOM XVII
To suffer is to work. A great sorrow suffered is a progress accomplished. Those
who suffer much live more than those who do not suffer.
AXIOM XVIII
Voluntary death from devotion is not suicide; it is the apotheosis of the will.
AXIOM XIX
Fear is nothing but idleness of the will, and for that reason public opinion
scourges cowards.
AXIOM XX
Succeed in not fearing the lion, and the lion will fear you. Say to sorrow: "I
will that you be a pleasure, more even than a pleasure, a happiness."
AXIOM XXI
A chain of iron is easier to break than a chain of flowers.
AXIOM XXII
Before saying that a man is happy or unhappy, find out what the direction of his
will has made of him: Tiberius died every day at Capri, while Jesus proved his
immortality and even his divinity on Calvary and upon the Cross.
{238}
CHAPTER II
THE POWER OF THE WORD
It is the word which creates forms; and forms in their turn react upon the word,
in order to modify it and complete it.
Every word of truth is a beginning of an act of justice.
One asks if man may sometimes be necessarily driven to evil. Yes, when his
judgment is false, and consequently his word unjust.
But one is responsible for a false judgment as for a bad action.
What falsifies the judgment is selfishness and its unjust vanities.
The unjust word, unable to realize itself by creation, realizes itself by
destruction. It must either slay or be slain.
If it were able to remain without action, it would be the greatest of all
disorders, an abiding blasphemy against truth.
Such is that idle word of which Christ has said that one will give account at
the Day of Judgment. A jesting word, a comicality which "recreates" and causes
laughter, is not an idle word.
The beauty of the word is a splendour of truth. A true word in always beautiful,
a beautiful word is always true.
For this reason works of art are always holy when they are beautiful. {239}
What does it matter to me that Anacreon should sing of Bathyllus, if in his
verse I hear the notes of that divine harmony which is the eternal hymn of
beauty? Poetry is pure as the Sun: it spreads its veil of light over the errors
of humanity. Woe to him who would lift the veil in order to perceive things
ugly!
The Council of Trent decided that it was permissible for wise and prudent
persons to read the books of the ancients, even those which were obscene, on
account of the beauty of the form. A statue of Nero or of Heliogabalus made like
a masterpiece of Phidias, would it not be an absolutely beautiful and absolutely
good work? --- and would not he deserve the execration of the whole world who
would propose to break it because it was the representation of a monster?
Scandalous statues are those which are badly sculptured, and the Venus of Milo
would be desecrated if one placed her beside some of the Virgins which they dare
to exhibit in certain churches.
One realizes evil in books of morality ill-written far more than in the poetry
of Catullus or the ingenious Allegories of Apuleius.
There are no bad books, except those which are badly conceived and badly
executed.
Every word of beauty is a word of truth. It is a light crystallized in speech.
But in order that the most brilliant light may be produced and made visible, a
shadow is necessary; and the creative word, that it may become efficacious,
needs contradictions. It must submit to the ordeal of negation, of sarcasm, and
then to that more cruel yet, of indifference and forgetfulness. {240} The Master
said: "If a corn of wheat fall into the ground and die, it abideth alone; but if
it die, it bringeth forth much fruit."
Affirmation and negation must, then, marry each other, and from their union will
be born the practical truth, the real and progressive word. It is necessity
which should constrain the workmen to choose for the corner-stone that which
they had at first despised and rejected. Let contradiction, then, never
discourage men of initiative! Earth is necessary for the ploughshare, and the
earth resists because it is in labour. It defends itself like all virgins; it
conceives and brings forth slowly like all mothers. You, then, who wish to sow a
new plant in the field of intelligence, understand and respect the modesties and
reluctances of limited experience and slow-moving reason.
When a new word comes into the world, it needs swaddling clothes and bandages;
genius brought it forth, but it is for experience to nourish it. Do not fear
that it will die of neglect! Oblivion is for it a favourable time of rest, and
contradictions help it to grow. When a sun bursts forth in space it creates
worlds or attracts them to itself. A single spark of fixed light promises a
universe to space.
All magic is in a word, and that word pronounced qabalistically is stronger than
all the powers of Heaven, Earth and Hell. With the name of "Jod he vau he," one
commands Nature: kingdoms are conquered in the name of Adonai, and the occult
forces which compose the empire of Hermes are one and all obedient to him who
knows how to pronounce duly the incommunicable name of Agla.
In order to pronounce duly the great words of the Qabalah, {241} one must
pronounce them with a complete intelligence, with a will that nothing checks, an
activity that nothing daunts. In magic, to have said is to have done; the word
begins with letters, it ends with acts. One does not really will a thing unless
one wills it with all one's heart, to the point of breaking for it one's dearest
affections; and with all one's forces, to the point of risking one's health,
one's fortune, and one's life.
It is by absolute devotion that faith proves itself and constitutes itself. But
the man armed with such a faith will be able to move mountains.
The most fatal enemy of our souls is idleness. Inertia intoxicates us and sends
us to sleep; but the sleep of inertia is corruption and death. The faculties of
the human soul are like the waves of the ocean. To keep them sweet, they need
the salt and bitterness of tears: they need the whirlwinds of Heaven: they need
to be shaken by the storm.
When, instead of marching upon the path of progress, we wish to have ourselves
carried, we are sleeping in the arms of death. It is to us that it is spoken, as
to the paralytic man in the Gospel, "Take up thy bed and walk!" It is for us to
carry death away, to plunge it into life.
Consider the magnificent and terrible metaphor of St. John; Hell is a sleeping
fire. It is a life without activity and without progress; it is sulphur in
stagnation: "stagnum ignis et sulphuris."
The sleeping life is like the idle word, and it is of that that men will have to
give an account in the Day of Judgment.
Intelligence speaks, and matter stirs. It will not rest until it has taken the
form given to it by the word. Behold the Christian word, how for these nineteen
centuries it has put {242} the world to work! What battles of giants! How many
errors set forth and rebutted! How much deceived and irritated Christianity lies
at the bottom of Protestantism, from the sixteenth century to the eighteenth!
Human egotism, in despair at its defeats, has whipped up all its stupidities in
turn. They have re-clothed the Saviour of the world with every rag and with
every mocking purple. After Jesus the Inquisitor they have invented the
"sans-culotte" Jesus! Measure if you can all the tears and all the blood that
have flowed; calculate audaciously all that will yet be shed before the arrival
of the Messianic reign of the Man-God who shall submit at once all passions to
powers and all powers to justice. THY KINGDOM COME! For nigh on nineteen hundred
years, over the whole surface of the earth, this has been the cry of seven
hundred million throats, and the Israelites yet await the Messiah! He said that
he would come, and come he will. He came to die, and he has promised to return
to live.
HEAVEN IS THE HARMONY OF GENEROUS SENTIMENTS.
HELL IS THE CONFLICT OF COWARDLY INSTINCTS.
When humanity, by dint of bloody and dolorous experience, has truly understood
this double truth, it will abjure the Hell of selfishness to enter into the
Heaven of devotion and of Christian charity.
The lyre of Orpheus civilized savage Greece, and the lyre of Amphion built
Thebes the Mysterious, because harmony is truth. The whole of Nature is harmony.
But the Gospel is not a lyre: it is the book of the eternal principles which
should and will regulate all the lyres and all the living harmonies of the
universe. {243}
While the world does not understand these three words: Truth, Reason, Justice,
and these: Duty, Hierarchy, Society, the revolutionary motto, "Liberty,
Equality, Fraternity," will be nothing but a threefold lie.
CHAPTER III
MYSTERIOUS INFLUENCES
NO middle course is possible. Every man is either good or bad. The indifferent,
the lukewarm are not good; they are consequently bad, and the worst of all the
bad, for they are imbecile and cowardly. The battle of life is like a civil war;
those who remain neutral betray both parties alike, and renounce the right to be
numbered among the children of the fatherland.
We all of us breathe in the life of others, and we breathe upon them in some
sort a part of our own existence. Good and intelligent men are, unknown to
themselves, the doctors of humanity; foolish and wicked men are public
poisoners.
There are people in whose company one feel refreshed. Look at that young society
woman! She chatters, she laughs, she dresses like everybody else; why, then, is
everything in her better and more perfect? Nothing is more natural than her
manner, nothing franker and more nobly free than her conversation. Near her
everything should be at its ease, except bad sentiments, but near her they are
impossible. She does not seek hearts, but draws them to herself and lifts them
up. She does not intoxicate, she {244} enchants. Her whole personality preaches
a perfection more amiable than virtue itself. She is more gracious than grace,
her acts are easy and inimitable, like fine music and poetry. It is of her that
a charming woman, too friendly to be her rival, said after a ball: "I thought I
saw the Holy Bible frolicking."
Now look upon the other side of the sheet! See this other woman who affects the
most rigid devotion, and would be scandalized if she heard the angels sing; but
her talk is malevolent, her glance haughty and contemptuous; when she speaks of
virtue she makes vice lovable. For her God is a jealous husband, and she makes a
great merit of not deceiving him. Her maxims are desolating, her actions due to
vanity more than to charity, and one might say after having met her at church:
"I have seen the devil at prayer."
On leaving the first, one feels one's self full of love for all that is
beautiful, good and generous. One is happy to have well said to her all the
noble things with which she has inspired you, and to have been approved by
her.<<WEH NOTE: This example reminds one of the 18th century Germaine Stael, who
died when Levi was seven.>> One says to one's self that life is good, since God
has bestowed it on such souls as hers; one is full of courage and of hope. The
other leaves you weakened and baffled, or perhaps, what is worse, full of evil
designs; she makes you doubt of honour, piety and duty; in her presence one only
escapes from weariness by the door of evil desires. One has uttered slander to
please her, humiliated one's self to flatter her pride, one remains discontented
with her and with one's self.
The lively and certain sentiment of these diverse influences is proper to
well-balanced spirits and delicate consciences, {245} and it is precisely that
which the old ascetic writers called the power of discerning spirits.
You are cruel consolers, said Job to his pretended friends. It is, in fact, the
vicious that afflict rather than console. They have a prodigious tact for
finding and choosing the most desperate banalities. Are you weeping for a broken
affection? How simple you are! they were playing with you, they did not love
you. You admit sorrowfully that your child limps; in friendly fashion, they bid
you remark that he is a hunchback. If he coughs and that alarms you, they
conjure you tenderly to take great care of him, perhaps he is consumptive. Has
you wife been ill for a long time? Cheer up, she will die of it!
Hope and work is the message of Heaven to us by the voice of all good souls.
Despair and die, Hell cries to us in every word and movement, even in all the
friendly acts and caresses of imperfect or degraded beings.
Whatever the reputation of any one may be, and whatever may be the testimonies
of friendship that that person may give you, if, on leaving him, you feel
yourself less well disposed and weaker, he is pernicious for you: avoid him.
Our double magnetism produces in us two sorts of sympathies. We need to absorb
and to radiate turn by turn. Our heart loves contrasts, and there are few women
who have loved two men of genius in succession.
One finds peace through the protection which one's own weariness of admiration
gives; it is the law of equilibrium; but sometimes even sublime natures are
surprised in caprices of vulgarity. Man, said the Abbe Gerbert, is the shadow of
{246} a God in the body of a beast; there are in him the friends of the angel
and the flatterers of the animal. The angel attracts us; but if we are not on
our guard, it is the beast that carries us away: it will even drag us fatally
with it when it is a question of beastliness; that is to say, of the
satisfactions of that life the nourisher of death, which, in the language of
beasts is called "real life." In religion, the Gospel is a sure guide; it is not
so in business, and there are a great many people who, if they had to settle the
temporal succession of Jesus Christ, would more willingly come to an agreement
with Judas Iscariot than with St. Peter.
One admires probity, said Juvenal, and one leaves it to freeze to death. If such
and such a celebrated man, for example, had not scandalously solicited wealth,
would one ever have thought of endowing his old muse? Who would have left him
legacies?
Virtue has our admiration, our purse owes it nothing, that great lady is rich
enough without us. One would rather give to vice, it is so poor!
"I do not like beggars, and I only give to the poor who are ashamed to beg,"
said one day a man of wit. "But what do you give them since you do not know
them?" "I give them my admiration and my esteem, and I have no need to know them
to do that." "How is it that you need so much money?" they asked another, "you
have no children and no calls on you." "I have my poor folk, and I cannot
prevent myself from giving them a great deal of money." "Make me acquainted with
the, perhaps I will give them something too." "Oh! you know some of them
already, I have no doubt. I have seven who cost me an enormous amount, and {247}
an eighth who costs more than the seven others. The seven are the seven deadly
sing; the eighth is gambling."
Another dialogue: ---
"Give me five francs, sir, I am dying of hunger." "Imbecile! you are dying of
hunger, and you want me to encourage you in so evil a course? You are dying of
hunger, and you have the impudence to admit it. You wish to make me the
accomplice of your incapacity, the abetter of your suicide. You want to put a
premium on wretchedness. For whom do you take me? Do you think I am a rascal
like yourself? ..."
And yet another: ---
"By the way, old fellow, could you lend me a thousand pounds? I want to seduce
an honest woman." "Ah! that is bad, but I can never refuse anything to a friend.
Here they are. When you have succeeded you might give me her address." That is
what is called in England, and elsewhere, the manners of a gentleman.
"The man of honour who is out of work steals, and does not beg!" replied, one
day, Cartouche to a passer-by who asked alms of him. It is as emphatic as the
word which tradition associates with Cambronne, and perhaps the famous thief and
the great general both really replied in the same manner.
It was that same Cartouche who offered, on another occasion, of his own accord
and without it being asked of him, twenty thousand pounds to a bankrupt. One
must act properly to one's brothers.
Mutual assistance is a law of nature. To aid those who are like ourselves is to
aid ourselves. But above mutual {248} assistance rises a holier and greater law:
it is universal assistance, it is charity.
We all admire and love Saint Vincent de Paul, but we have also a secret weakness
for the cleverness, the presence of mind, and, above all, the audacity of
Cartouche.
The avowed accomplices of our passions may disgust us by humiliating us; at our
own risk and peril our pride will teach us how to resist them. But what is more
dangerous for us than our hypocritical and hidden accomplices? They follow us
like sorrow, await us like the abyss, surround us like infatuation. We excuse
them in order to excuse ourselves, defending them in order to defend ourselves,
justifying them in order to justify ourselves, and we submit to them finally
because we must, because we have not the strength to resist our inclinations,
because we lack the will to do so.
They have possessed themselves of our ascendant, as Paracelsus says, and where
they wish to lead us we shall go.
They are our bad angels. We know it in the depths of our consciousness; but we
put up with them, we have made ourselves their servants that they also may be
ours.
Our passions treated tenderly and flattered, have become slave-mistresses; and
those who serve our passions our valets, and our masters.
We breathe out our thoughts and breathe in those of others imprinted in the
astral light which has become their electro-magnetic atmosphere: and thus the
companionship of the wicked is less fatal to the good than that of vulgar,
cowardly, and tepid beings. Strong antipathy warns us easily, and saves us from
the contact of gross vices; it is not thus with disguised vices vices to a
certain extend diluted {249} and become almost lovable. An honest woman will
experience nothing but disgust in the society of a prostitute, but she has
everything to fear from the seductions of a coquette.
One knows that madness is contagious, but the mad are more particularly
dangerous when they are amiable and sympathetic. One enters little by little
into their circle of ideas, one ends by understanding their exaggerations, while
partaking their enthusiasm, one grows accustomed to their logic that has lost
its way, one ends by finding that they are not as mad as one thought at first.
Thence to believing that they alone are right there is but one step. One likes
them, one approves of them, one is as mad as they are.
The affections are free and may be based on reason, but sympathies are of
fatalism, and very frequently unreasonable. They depend on the more or less
balanced attractions of the magnetic light, and act on men in the same way as
upon animals. One will stupidly take pleasure in the society of a person in whom
is nothing lovable, because one is mysteriously attracted and dominated by him.
And often enough, these strange sympathies began by lively antipathies; the
fluids repelled each other at first, and subsequently became balanced.
The equilibrating speciality of the plastic medium of every person is what
Paracelsus calls his "ascendant," and he gives the name of "flagum" to the
particular reflection of the habitual ideas of each one in the universal light.
One arrives at the knowledge of the "ascendant" of a person by the sensitive
divination of the "flagum," and by a persistent direction of the will. One turns
the active side of one's own ascendant towards the passive side of the ascendant
of {250} another when one wishes to take hold of that other and dominate him.
The astral ascendant has been divined by other magi, who gave it the name of
"tourbillon" (vortex).
It is, say they, a current of specialized light, representing always the same
circle of images, and consequently determined and determining impressions. These
vortices exist for men as for stars. "The stars," said Paracelsus, "breathe out
their luminous soul, and attract each other's radiation. The soul of the earth,
prisoner of the fatal laws of gravitation, frees itself by specializing itself,
and passes through the instinct of animals to arrive at the intelligence of man.
The active portion of this will is dumb, but it preserves in writing the secrets
of Nature. The free part can no longer read this fatal writing without
instantaneously losing its liberty. One does not pass from dumb and vegetative
contemplation to free vibrating thought without changing one's surroundings and
one's organs. Thence comes the forgetfulness which accompanies birth, and the
vague reminiscences of our sickly intuitions, always analogous to the visions of
our ecstasies and of our dreams."
This revelation of that great master of occult medicine throws a fierce light on
all the phenomena of somnambulism and of divination. There also, for whoever
knows how to find it, is the true key of evocation, and of communication with
the fluidic soul of the earth.
Those persons whose dangerous influence makes itself felt by a single touch are
those who make part of a fluidic association, or who either voluntarily or
involuntarily make use of a current of astral light which has gone astray.
Those, {251} for example, who live in isolation, deprived of all communication
with humanity, and who are daily in fluidic sympathy with animals gathered
together in great number, as is ordinarily the case with shepherds, are
possessed of the demon whose name is "legion;" in their turn they reign
despotically over the fluid souls of the flocks that are confided to their care:
consequently their good-will or ill-will makes their cattle prosper or die; and
this influence of animal sympathy can be exercised by them upon human plastic
mediums which are ill defended, owing either to a weak will or a limited
intelligence.
Thus are explained the bewitchments which are habitually made by shepherds, and
the still quite recent phenomena of the Presbytery of Cideville.
Cideville is a little village of Normandy, where a few years ago were produced
phenomena like those which have since occurred under the influence of Mr. Home.
M. de Mirville has studied them carefully, and M. Gougenet Desmousseaux has
reprinted all the details in a book, published in 1854, entitled "Moeurs et
pratiques des demons." The most remarkable thing in this latter author is that
he seems to divine the existence of the plastic medium or the fluidic body. "We
have certainly not two souls," said he, "but perhaps we have two bodies."
Everything that he says, in fact, would seem to prove this hypothesis. He saw a
shepherd whose fluidic form haunted a Presbytery, and who was wounded at a
distance by blows inflicted on his astral larva.
We shall here ask of MM. de Mirville and Gougenet Desmousseaux if they take this
shepherd for the devil, and if, far or near, the devil such as they conceive him
can be scratched {252} or wounded. At that time, in Normandy, the magnetic
illnesses of mediums were hardly known, and this unhappy sleep- walker, who
ought to have been cared for an cured, was roughly treated and even beaten, not
even in his fludic appearance, but in his proper person, by the Vicar himself.
That is, one must agree, a singular kind of exorcism! If those violences really
took place, and if they may be imputed to a Churchman whom one considers, and
who may be, for all we know, very good and very respectable, let us admit that
such writers as MM. de Mirville and Gougenet Desmousseaux make themselves not a
little his accomplices!
The laws of physical life are inexorable, and in his animal nature man is born a
slave to fatality; it is by dint of struggles against his instincts that he may
win moral freedom. Two different existences are then possible for us upon the
earth; one fatal, the other free. The fatal being is the toy or instrument of a
force which he does not direct. Now, when the instruments of fatality meet and
collide, the stronger breaks or carries away the weaker; truly emancipated
beings fear neither bewitchments nor mysterious influences.
You may reply that an encounter with Cain may be fatal for Abel. Doubtless; but
such a fatality is an advantage to the pure and holy victim, it is only a
misfortune for the assassin.
Just as among the righteous there is a great community of virtues and merits,
there is among the wicked an absolute solidarity of fatal culpability and
necessary chastisement. Crime resides in the tendencies of the heart.
Circumstances which are almost always independent of the will are the only
causes of the gravity of the acts. If fatality had made Nero {253} a slave, he
would have become an actor or a gladiator, and would not have burned Rome: would
it be to him that one should be grateful for that?
Nero was the accomplice of the whole Roman people, and those who should have
prevented them incurred the whole responsibility for the frenzies of this
monster. Seneca, Burrhus, Thrasea, Corbulon, theirs is the real guilt of that
fearful reign; great men who were either selfish or incapable! The only thing
they knew was how to die.
If one of the bears of the Zoological Gardens escaped and devoured several
people, would one blame him or his keepers?
Whoever frees himself from the common errors of mankind is obliged to pay a
ransom proportional to the sum of these errors: Socrates pays for Aneitus, and
Jesus was obliged to suffer a torment whose terror was equal to the whole
treason of Judas.
Thus, by paying the debts of fatality, hard-won liberty purchases the empire of
the world; it is hers to bind and to unbind. God has put in her hands the keys
of Heaven and of Hell.
You men who abandon brutes to themselves wish them to devour you.
The rabble, slaves of fatality, can only enjoy liberty by absolute obedience to
the will of free men; they ought to work for those who are responsible for them.
But when the brute governs brutes, when the blind leads the blind, when the
leader is as subject to fatality as the masses, what must one expect? What but
the most shocking catastrophes? In that we shall never be disappointed.
By admitting the anarchical dogmas of 1789, Louis XVI {254} launched the State
upon a fatal slope. From that moment all the crimes of the Revolution weighed
upon him alone; he alone had failed in his duty. Robespierre and Marat only did
what they had to do. Girondins and Montagnards killed each other in the workings
of fatality, and their violent deaths were so many necessary catastrophes; at
that epoch there was but one great and legitimate execution, really sacred,
really expiatory: that of the King. The principle of royalty would have fallen
if that too weak price had escaped. But a transaction between order and disorder
was impossible. One does not inherit from those whom one murders; one robs them;
and the Revolution rehabilitated Louis XVI by assassinating him. After so many
concessions, so many weaknesses, so many unworthy abasements, that man,
consecrated a second time by misfortune, was able at least to say, as he walked
to the scaffold: "The Revolution is condemned, and I am always the King of
France"!
To be just is to suffer for all those who are not just, but it is life: to be
wicked is to suffer for one's self without winning life; it is to deceive one's
self, to do evil, and to win eternal death.
To recapitulate: Fatal influences are those of death. Living influences are
those of life. According as we are weaker or stronger in life, we attract or
repel witchcraft. This occult power is only too real, but intelligence and
virtue will always find the means to avoid its obsessions and its attacks. {255}
CHAPTER IV
MYSTERIES OF PERVERSITY
HUMAN equilibrium is composed of two attractions, one towards death, the other
towards life. Fatality is the vertigo which drags us to the abyss; liberty is
the reasonable effort which lifts us above the fatal attractions of death. What
is mortal sin? It is apostasy from our own liberty; it is to abandon ourselves
to the law of inertia. An unjust act is a compact with injustice; now, every
injustice is an abdication of intelligence. We fall from that moment under the
empire of force whose reactions always crush everything which is unbalanced.
The love of evil and the formal adhesion of the will to injustice are the last
efforts of the expiring will. Man, whatever he may do, is more than a brute, and
he cannot abandon himself like a brute to fatality. He must choose. He must
love. The desperate soul that thinks itself in love with death is still more
alive than a soul without love. Activity for evil can and should lead back a man
to good, by counter-stroke and by reaction. The true evil, that for which there
is no remedy, is inertia.<<WEH NOTE: In traditional Qabalah, there are only four
Qlipoth or shells of evil. The first of these is associated with Malkuth, simple
material limitation, tiredness, inertia.>>
The abysses of grace correspond to the abysses of perversity. God has often made
saints of scoundrels; but He has never done anything with the half- hearted and
the cowardly.
Under penalty of reprobation, one must work, one must act. Nature, moreover,
sees to this, and if we will not march on with all our courage towards life, she
flings us with all {256} her forces towards death. She drags those who will not
walk.
A man whom one may call the great prophet of drunkards, Edgar Poe, that sublime
madman, that genius of lucid extravagance, has depicted with terrifying reality
the nightmares of perversity. ...
"I killed the old man because he squinted." "I did that because I ought not to
have done it."
There is the terrible antistrophe of Tertullian's "Credo quia absurdum."
To brave God and to insult Him, is a final act of faith.<<WEH NOTE: See
Crowley's "John St. John".>> "The dead praise thee not, O Lord," said the
Psalmist; and we might add if we dared: "The dead do not blaspheme thee."
"O my son!" said a father as he leaned over the bed of his child who had fallen
into lethargy after a violent access of delirium: "insult me again, beat me,
bite me, I shall feel that you are still alive, but do not rest for ever in the
frightful silence of the tomb!"
A great crime always comes to protest against great lukewarmness. A hundred
thousand good priests, had their charity been more active, might have prevented
the crime of the wretch Verger. The Church has the right to judge, condemn and
punish an ecclesiastic who causes scandal; but she has not the right to abandon
him to the frenzies of despair and the temptations of misery and hunger.
Nothing is so terrifying as nothingness, and if one could ever formulate the
conception of it, if it were possible to admit it, Hell would be a thing to hope
for.
This is why Nature itself seeks and imposes expiation as a remedy; that is why
chastisement is a chastening, as that {257} great Catholic Count Joseph de
Maistre so well understood; this is why the penalty of death is a natural right,
and will never disappear from human laws. The stain of murder would be indelible
if God did not justify the scaffold; the divine power, abdicated by society and
usurped by criminals, would belong to them without dispute. Assassination would
then become a virtue when it exercised the reprisals of outraged nature. Private
vengeance would protest against the absence of public expiation, and from the
splinters of the broken sword of justice anarchy would forge its daggers.
"If God did away with Hell, men would make another in order to defy Him," said a
good priest to us one day. He was right: and it is for that reason that Hell is
so anxious to be done away with. Emancipation! is the cry of every vice.
Emancipation of murder by the abolition of the pain of death; emancipation of
prostitution and infanticide by the abolition of marriage; emancipation of
idleness and rapine by the abolition of property. ... So revolves the whirlwind
of perversity until it arrives at this supreme and secret formula: Emancipation
of death by the abolition of life!
It is by the victories of toil that one escapes from the fatalities of sorrow.
What we call death is but the eternal parturition of Nature. Ceaselessly she
re-absorbs and takes again to her breast all that is not born of the spirit.
Matter, in itself inert, can only exist by virtue of perpetual motion, and
spirit, naturally volatile, can only endure by fixing itself. Emancipation from
the laws of fatality by the free adhesion of the spirit to the true and good, is
what the Gospel calls the spiritual birth; the re-absorption into the eternal
bosom of Nature is the second death. {258}
Unemancipated beings are drawn towards this second death by a fatal gravitation;
the one drags the other, as the divine Michel Angelo has made us see so clearly
in his great picture of the Last Judgment; they are clinging and tenacious like
drowning men, and free spirits must struggle energetically against them, that
their flight may not be hindered by them, that they may not be pulled back to
Hell.
This war is as ancient as the world; the Greeks figured it under the symbols of
Eros and Anteros, and the Hebrews by the antagonism of Cain and Abel. It is the
war of the Titans and the Gods. The two armies are everywhere invisible,
disciplined and always ready for attack or counterattack. Simple-minded folk on
both sides, astonished at the instant and unanimous resistance that they meet,
begin to believe in vast plots cleverly organized, in hidden, all-powerful
societies. Eugene Sue invents Rodin;<<Not the sculptor. --- TRANS.>> churchmen
talk of the Illuminati and of the Freemasons; Wronski dreams of his bands of
mystics, and there is nothing true and serious beneath all that but the
necessary struggle of order and disorder, of the instincts and of thought; the
result of that struggle is balance in progress, and the devil always
contributes, despite himself, to the glory of St. Michael.
Physical love is the most perverse of all fatal passions. It is the anarchist of
anarchists; it knows neither law, duty, truth nor justice. It would make the
maiden walk over the corpses of her parents. It is an irrepressible
intoxication; a furious madness. It is the vertigo of fatality seeking new
victims; the cannibal drunkenness of Saturn who wishes to {259} become a father
in order that he may have more children to devour. To conquer love is to triumph
over the whole of Nature. To submit it to justice is to rehabilitate life by
devoting it to immortality; thus the greatest works of the Christian revelation
are the creation of voluntary virginity and the sanctification of marriage.
While love is nothing but a desire and an enjoyment, it is mortal. In order to
make itself eternal it must become a sacrifice, for then it becomes a power and
a virtue.<<WEH NOTE: See Crowley in MAGICK IN THEORY AND PRACTICE, chapter 12.>>
It is the struggle of Eros and Anteros which produces the equilibrium of the
world.
Everything that over-excites sensibility leads to depravity and crime. Tears
call for blood. It is with great emotions as with strong drink; to use them
habitually is to abuse them. Now, every abuse of the emotions perverts the moral
sense; one seeks them for their own sakes; one sacrifices everything in order to
procure them for one's self. A romantic woman will easily become an Old Bailey
heroine. She may even arrive at the deplorable and irreparable absurdity of
killing herself in order to admire herself, and pity herself, in seeing herself
die!
Romantic habits lead women to hysteria and men to melancholia. Manfred, Rene,
Lelia are types of perversity only the more profound in that they argue on
behalf of their unhealthy pride, and make poems of their dementia. One asks
one's self with terror what monster might be born from the coupling of Manfred
and Lelia!
The loss of the moral sense is a true insanity; the man who does not, first of
all, obey justice no longer belongs to himself; he walks without a light in the
night of his existence; {260} he shakes like one in a dream, a prey to the
nightmare of his passions.
The impetuous currents of instinctive life and the feeble resistances of the
will form an antagonism so distinct that the qabalists hypothesized the
super-foetation of souls; that is to say, they believed in the presence in one
body of several souls who dispute it with each other and often seek to destroy
it. Very much as the shipwrecked sailors of the "Medusa," when they were
disputing the possession of the too small raft, sought to sink it.
It is certain that, in making one's self the servant of any current whatever, of
instincts or even of ideas, one gives up one's personality, and becomes the
slave of that multitudinous spirit whom the Gospel calls "legion." Artists know
this well enough. Their frequent evocations of the universal light enervate
them. They become "mediums," that is to say, sick men. The more success
magnifies them in public opinion, the more their personality diminishes. They
become crotchety, envious, wrathful. They do not admit that any merit, even in a
different sphere, can be placed besides theirs; and, having become unjust, they
dispense even with politeness. To escape this fatality, really great men isolate
themselves from all comradeship, knowing it to be death to liberty. They save
themselves by a proud unpopularity from the contamination of the vile multitude.
If Balzac had been during his life a man of a clique or of a party, he would not
have remained after his death the great and universal genius of our epoch.
The light illuminates neither things insensible nor closed eyes, or at least it
only illuminates them for the profit of those who see. The word of Genesis, "Let
there be light!" {261} is the cry of victory with which intelligence triumphs
over darkness. This word is sublime in effect because it expresses simply the
greatest and most marvellous thing in the world: the creation of intelligence by
itself, when, calling its powers together, balancing its faculties, it says: I
wish to immortalize myself with the sight of the eternal truth. Let there be
light! and there is light. Light, eternal as God, begins every day for all eyes
that are open to see it. Truth will be eternally the invention and the creation
of genius; it cries: Let there be light! and genius itself is, because light is.
Genius is immortal because it understands that light is eternal. Genius
contemplates truth as its work because it is the victor of light, and
immortality is the triumph of light because it will be the recompense and crown
of genius.
But all spirits do not see with justness, because all hearts do not will with
justice. There are souls for whom the true light seems to have no right to be.
They content themselves with phosphorescent visions, abortions of light,
hallucinations of thought; and, loving these phantoms, fear the day which will
put them to flight, because they feel that, the day not being made for their
eyes, they would fall back into a deeper darkness. It is thus that fools first
fear, then calumniate, insult, pursue and condemn the sages. One must pity them,
and pardon them, for they know not what they do.
True light rests and satisfies the soul; hallucination, on the contrary, tires
it and worries it. The satisfactions of madness are like those gastronomic
dreams of hungry men which sharpen their hunger without ever satisfying it.
Thence are born irritations and troubles, discouragements and despairs. --- Life
is always a lie to us, say the disciples of {262} Werther, and therefore we wish
to die! Poor children, it is not death that you need, it is life. Since you have
been in the world you have died every day; is it from the cruel pleasure of
annihilation that you would demand a remedy for the annihilation of your
pleasure? No, life has never deceived you, you have not yet lived. What you have
been taking for life is but the hallucinations and the dreams of the first
slumber of death!
All great criminals have hallucinated themselves on purpose; and those who
hallucinate themselves on purpose may be fatally led to become great criminals.
Our personal light specialized, brought forth, determined by our own
overmastering affection, is the germ of our paradise or of our Hell. Each one of
us (in a sense) conceives, bears, and nourishes his good or evil angel. The
conception of truth gives birth in us to the good genius; intentional untruth
hatches and brings up nightmares and phantoms. Everyone must nourish his
children; and our life consumes itself for the sake of our thoughts. Happy are
those who find again immortality in the creations of their soul! Woe unto them
who wear themselves out to nourish falsehood and to fatten death! for every one
will reap the harvest of his own sowing.
There are some unquiet and tormented creature whose influence is disturbing and
whose conversation is fatal. In their presence one feels one's self irritated,
and one leaves their presence angry; yet, by a secret perversity, one looks for
them, in order to experience the disturbance and enjoy the malevolent emotions
which they give us. Such persons suffer from the contagious maladies of the
spirit of perversity.
The spirit of perversity has always for its secret motive {263} the thirst of
destruction, and its final aim is suicide. The murderer of Elisabide, on his own
confession, not only felt the savage need of killing his relations and friends,
but he even wished, had it been possible --- he said it in so many words at his
trial --- "to burst the globe like a cooked chestnut." Lacenaire, who spent his
days in plotting murders, in order to have the means of passing his nights in
ignoble orgies or in the excitement of gambling, boasted aloud that he had
lived. He called that living, and he sang a hymn to the guillotine, which he
called his beautiful betrothed, and the world was full of imbeciles who admired
the wretch! Alfred de Musset, before extinguishing himself in drunkenness,
wasted one of the finest talents of his century in songs of cold irony and of
universal disgust. The unhappy man had been bewitched by the breath of a
profoundly perverse woman, who, after having killed him, crouched like a ghoul
upon his body and tore his winding sheet. We asked one day, of a young writer of
this school, what his literature proved. It proves, he replied frankly and
simply, that one must despair and die. What apostleship, and what a doctrine!
But these are the necessary and regular conclusions of the spirit of perversity;
to aspire ceaselessly to suicide, to calumniate life and nature, to invoke death
every day without being able to die. This is eternal Hell, it is the punishment
of Satan, that mythological incarnation of the spirit of perversity; the true
translation into French of the Greek word "Diabolos," or devil, is "le pervers
--- the perverse."
Here is a mystery which debauchees do not suspect. It is this: one cannot enjoy
even the material pleasures of life but by virtue of the moral sense. Pleasure
is the music of the {264} interior harmonies; the senses are only its
instruments, instruments which sound false in contact with a degraded soul. The
wicked can feel nothing, because they can love nothing: in order to love one
must be good. Consequently for them everything is empty, and it seems to them
that Nature is impotent, because they are so themselves; they doubt everything
because they know nothing; they blaspheme everything because they taste nothing;
they caress in order to degrade; they drink in order to get drunk; they sleep in
order to forget; they wake in order to endure mortal boredom: thus will live, or
rather thus will die, every day he who frees himself from every law and every
duty in order to make himself the slave of his passions. The world, and eternity
itself, become useless to him who makes himself useless to the world and to
eternity.
Our will, by acting directly upon our plastic medium, that is to say, upon the
portion of astral life which is specialized in us, and which serves us for the
assimilation and configuration of the elements necessary to our existence; our
will, just or unjust, harmonious or perverse, shapes the medium in its own image
and gives it beauty in conformity with what attracts us. Thus moral monstrosity
produces physical ugliness; for the astral medium, that interior architect of
our bodily edifice, modifies it ceaselessly according to our real or factitious
needs. It enlarges the belly and the jaws of the greedy, thins the lips of the
miser, makes the glances of impure women shameless, and those of the envious and
malicious venomous. When selfishness has prevailed in the soul, the look becomes
cold, the features hard: the harmony of form disappears, and according to the
absorption or radiant speciality of this {265} selfishness, the limbs dry up or
become encumbered with fat. Nature, in making of our body the portrait of our
soul, guarantees its resemblance for ever, and tirelessly retouches it. You
pretty women who are not good, be sure that you will not long remain beautiful.
Beauty is the loan which Nature makes to virtue. If virtue is not ready when it
falls due, the lender will pitilessly take back Her capital.
Perversity, by modifying the organism whose equilibrium it destroys, creates at
the same time a fatality of needs which urges it to its own destruction, to its
death. The less the perverse man enjoys, the more thirsty of enjoyment he is.
Wine is like water for the drunkard, gold melts in the hands of the gambler;
Messalina tires herself out without being satiated. The pleasure which escapes
them changes itself for them into a long irritation and desire. The more
murderous are their excesses, the more it seems to them that supreme happiness
is at hand. ... One more bumper of strong drink, one more spasm, one more
violence done to Nature... Ah! at last, here is pleasure; here is life ... and
their desire, in the paroxysm of its insatiable hunger, extinguishes itself for
ever in death.
{266}
FOURTH PART
THE GREAT PRACTICAL SECRETS OR THE REALIZATION
OF SCIENCE
INTRODUCTION
THE lofty sciences of the Qabalah and of Magic promise man an exceptional, real,
effective, efficient power, and one should regard them as false and vain if they
do not give it.
Judge the teachers by their works, said the supreme Master. This rule of
judgment is infallible.
If you wish me to believe in what you know, show me what you do.
God, in order to exalt man to moral emancipation, hides Himself from him and
abandons to him, after a fashion, the government of the world. He leaves Himself
to be guessed by the grandeurs and harmonies of nature, so that man may
progressively make himself perfect by ever exalting the idea that he makes for
himself of its author.
Man knows God only by the names which he gives to that Being of beings, and does
not distinguish Him but by the images of Him which he endeavours to trace. He is
then in a manner the creator of Him Who has created him. He believes himself the
mirror of God, and by indefinitely enlarging his own mirage, he thinks that he
may be able to sketch in infinite space the shadow of Him Who is without body,
without shadow, and without space. {267}
TO CREATE GOD, TO CREATE ONE'S SELF, TO MAKE ONE'S SELF INDEPENDENT, IMMORTAL
AND WITHOUT SUFFERING: there certainly is a programme more daring than the dream
of Prometheus. Its expression is bold to the point of impiety, its thought
ambitious to the point of madness. Well, this programme is only paradoxical in
its form, which lends itself to a false and sacrilegious interpretation. In one
sense it is perfectly reasonable, and the science of the adepts promises to
realize it, and to accomplish it in perfection.
Man, in effect, creates for himself a God corresponding to his own intelligence
and his own goodness; he cannot raise his ideal higher than his moral
development permits him to do. The God whom he adores is always an enlargement
of his own reflection. To conceive the absolute of goodness and justice is to be
one's self exceeding just and good.
The moral qualities of the spirit are riches, and the greatest of all riches.
One must acquire them by strife and toil. One may bring this objection, the
inequality of aptitudes; some children are born with organisms nearer to
perfection. But we ought to believe that such organisms result from a more
advanced work of Nature, and the children who are endowed with them have
acquired them, if not by their own efforts, at least by the consolidated works
of the human beings to whom their existence is bound. It is a secret of Nature,
and Nature does nothing by chance; the possession of more developed intellectual
faculties, like that of money and land, constitutes an indefeasible right of
transmission and inheritance.
Yes, man is called to complete the work of his creator, and every instant
employed by him to improve himself or to {268} destroy himself, is decisive for
all eternity. It is by the conquest of an intelligence eternally clear and of a
will eternally just, that he constitutes himself as living for eternal life,
since nothing survives injustice and error but the penalty of their disorder. To
understand good is to will it, and on the plane of justice to will is to do. For
this reason the Gospel tells us that men will be judged according to their
works.
Our works make us so much what we are, that our body itself, as we have said,
receives the modification, and sometimes the complete change, of its form from
our habits.
A form conquered, or submitted to, becomes a providence, or a fatality, for all
one's existence. Those strange figures which the Egyptians gave to the human
symbols of divinity represent the fatal forms. Typhon has a crocodile's head. He
is condemned to eat ceaselessly in order to fill his hippopotamus belly. Thus he
is devoted, by his greed and his ugliness, to eternal destruction.
Man can kill or vivify his faculties by negligence or by abuse. He can create
for himself new faculties by the good use of those which he has received from
Nature. People often say that the affections will not be commanded, that faith
is not possible for all, that one does not re-make one's own character. All
these assertions are true only for the idle or the perverse. One can make one's
self faithful, pious, loving, devoted, when one wishes sincerely to be so. One
can give to one's spirit the calm of justness, as to one's will the almighty
power of justice. Once can reign in Heaven by virtue of faith, on earth by
virtue of science. The man who knows how to command himself is king of all
Nature. {269}
We are going to state forthwith, in this last book, by what means the true
initiates have made themselves the masters of life, how they have overcome
sorrow and death; how they work upon themselves and others the transformation of
Proteus; how they exercise the divining power of Apollonius; how they make the
gold of Raymond Lully and of Flamel; how in order to renew their youth they
possess the secrets of Postel the Re-arisen, and those alleged to have been in
the keeping of Cagliostro. In short, we are going to speak the last word of
magic.
CHAPTER I
OF TRANSFORMATION --- THE WAND OF CIRCE --- THE BATH OF MEDEA --- MAGIC
OVERCOME BY ITS OWN WEAPONS --- THE GREAT ARCANUM OF THE JESUITS AND THE
SECRET OF THEIR POWER.
THE Bible tells us that King Nebuchadnezzar, at the highest point of his power
and his pride, was suddenly changed into a beast.
He fled into savage places, began to eat grass, let his beard and hair grow, as
well as his nails, and remained in this state for seven years.
In our "Dogme et rituel de la haute magie," we have said what we think of the
mysteries of lycanthropy, or the metamorphosis of men into werewolves.
Everyone knows the fable of Circe and understands its allegory. {270}
The fatal ascendant of one person on another is the true wand of Circe.
One knows that almost all human physiognomies bear a resemblance to one animal
or another, that is to say, the "signature" of a specialized instinct.
Now, instincts are balanced by contrary instincts, and dominated by instincts
stronger than those.
In order to dominate sheep, the dog plays upon their fear of wolves.
If you are a dog, and you want a pretty little cat to love you, you have only
one means to take: to metamorphose yourself into a cat.
But how! By observation, imitation and imagination. We think that our figurative
language will be understood for once, and we recommend this revelation to all
who wish to magnetize: it is the deepest of all the secrets of their art.
Here is the formula in technical terms:
"To polarize one's own animal light, in equilibrated antagonism with the
contrary pole."
Or:
To concentrate in one's self the special qualities of absorption in order to
direct their rays towards an absorbing focus, and vice versa.
This government of our magnetic polarization may be done by the assistance of
the animal forms of which we have spoken; they will serve to fix the
imagination.
Let us give an example:
You wish to act magnetically upon a person polarized like yourself, which, if
you are a magnetizer, you will divine at the first contact: only that person is
a little less strong that you {271} are, a mouse, while you are a rat. Make
yourself a cat, and you will capture it.
In one of the admirable stories which, though he did not invent it, he has told
better than anybody, Perrault puts upon the stage a cat, which cunningly induces
an ogre to change himself into a mouse, and the thing is no sooner done, than
the mouse is crunched by the cat. The "Tales of Mother Goose," like the "Golden
Ass" of Apuleius, are perhaps true magical legends, and hide beneath the cloak
of childish fairy tales the formidable secrets of science.
It is a matter of common knowledge that magnetizers give to pure water the
properties and taste of wine, liqueurs and every conceivable drug, merely by the
laying-on of hands, that is to say, by their will expressed in a sign.
One knows, too, that those who tame fierce animals conquer lions by making
themselves mentally and magnetically stronger and fiercer than lions.
Jules Gerard, the intrepid hunter of the African lion, would be devoured if he
were afraid. But, in order not to be afraid of a lion, one must make one's self
stronger and more savage than the animal itself by an effort of imagination and
of will. One must say to one's self: It is I who am the lion, and in my presence
this animal is only a dog who ought to tremble before me.
Fourier imagined anti-lions; Jules Gerard has realized that chimera of the
phanlasterian<<Fourier was a Socialist who wrote a sort of "Utopia." His social
unit was the "phalanstere." --- TRANS.>> dreamer.
But, one will say, in order not to fear lions, it is enough to be a man of
courage and well armed. {272}
No, that is not enough. One must know one's self by heart, so to speak, to be
able to calculate the leaps of the animal, divining its stratagems, avoiding its
claws, foreseeing its movements, to be in a word past-master in lioncraft, as
the excellent La Fontaine might have said.
Animals are the living symbols of the instincts and passions of men. If you make
a man timid, you change him into a hare. If, on the contrary, you drive him to
ferocity, you make a tiger of him.
The wand of Circe is the power of fascination which woman possesses; and the
changing of the companions of Ulysses into hogs is not a story peculiar to that
time.
But no metamorphosis may be worked without destruction. To change a hawk into a
dove, one must first kill it, then cut it to pierces, so as to destroy even the
least trace of its first form, and then boil it in the magic bath of Medea.
Observe how modern hierophants proceed in order to accomplish human
regeneration; how, for example, in the Catholic religion, they go to work in
order to change a man more or less weak and passionate into a stoical missionary
of the Society of Jesus.
There is the great secret of that venerable and terrible Order, always
misunderstood, often calumniated, and always sovereign.
Read attentively the book entitled, "The Exercises of St. Ignatius," and note
with what magical power that man of genius operates the realization of faith.
He orders his disciples to see, to touch, to smell, to taste invisible things.
He wishes that the senses should be exalted during prayer to the point of
voluntary hallucination. {273} You are meditating upon a mystery of faith; St.
Ignatius wishes, in the first place, that you should create a place, dream of
it, see it, touch it. If it is hell, he gives you burning rocks to touch, he
makes you swim in shadows thick as pitch, he puts liquid sulphur on your tongue,
he fills your nostrils with an abominable stench, he shows you frightful
tortures, and makes you hear groans superhuman in their agony; he commands your
will to create all that by exercises obstinately persevered in. Every one
carries this out in his own fashion, but always in the way best suited to
impress him. It is not the hashish intoxication which was useful to the knavery
of the Old Man of the Mountain; it is a dream without sleep, an hallucination
without madness, a reasoned and willed vision, a real creation of intelligence
and faith. Thence-forward, when he preaches, the Jesuit can say: "What we have
seen with our eyes, what we have heard with our ears, and what our hands have
handled, that do we declare unto you." The Jesuit thus trained is in communion
with a circle of wills exercised like his own; consequently each of the fathers
is as strong as the Society, and the Society is stronger than the world.
CHAPTER II
HOW TO PRESERVE AND RENEW YOUTH --- THE SECRETS OF CAGLIOSTRO --- THE
POSSIBILITY OF RESURRECTION --- EXAMPLE OF WILLIAM POSTEL, CALLED THE
RESURRECTED --- STORY OF A WONDER-WORKING WORKMAN, ETC.
ONE knows that a sober, moderately busy, and perfectly regular life usually
prolongs existence; but in our opinion, {274} that is little more than the
prolongation of old age, and one has the right to ask from the science which we
profess other privileges and other secrets.
To be a long time young, or even to become young again, that is what would
appear desirable and precious to the majority of men. It is possible? We shall
examine the question.
The famous Count of Saint-Germain is dead, we do not doubt, but no one ever saw
him grow old. He appeared always of the age of forty years, and at the time of
his greatest celebrity, he pretended to be over eighty.
Ninon de l'Enclos, in her very old age, was still a young, beautiful and
seductive woman. She died without having grown old.
Desbarrolles, the celebrated palmist, has been for a long while for everybody a
man of thirty-five years. His birth certificate would speak very differently if
he dared to show it, but no one would believe it.
Cagliostro always appeared the same age. He pretended to possess not only an
elixir which gave to the old, for an instant, all the vigour of youth; but he
also prided himself on being able to operate physical regeneration by means
which we have detailed and analysed in our "History of Magic."
Cagliostro and the Count of Saint-Germain attributed the preservation of their
youth to the existence and use of the universal medicine, that medicament
uselessly sought by so many hermetists and alchemists.
An Initiate of the sixteenth century, the good and learned William Postel, never
pretended that he possessed the great arcanum of the hermetic philosophy; and
yet after having {275} been seen old and broken, he reappeared with a bright
complexion, without wrinkles, his beard and hair black, his body agile and
vigorous. His enemies pretended that he roughed, and dyed his hair; for scoffers
and false savants must find some sort of explanation for the phenomena which
they do not understand.
The great magical means of preserving the youth of the body is to prevent the
soul from growing old by preserving preciously that original freshness of
sentiments and thoughts which the corrupt world calls illusions, and which we
shall call the primitive mirages of eternal truth.
To believe in happiness upon earth, in friendship, in love, in a maternal
Providence which counts all our steps, and will reward all our tears, is to be a
perfect dupe, the corrupt world will say; it does not see that it is itself who
is the dupe, believing itself strong in depriving itself of all the delights of
the soul.
To believe in moral good is to possess that good: for this reason the Saviour of
the world promises the kingdom of heaven to those who should make themselves
like little children. What is childhood? It is the age of faith. The child knows
nothing yet of life; and thus he radiates confident immortality. Is it possible
for him to doubt the devotion, the tenderness, the friendship, and the love of
Providence when he is in the arms of his mother?
Become children in heart, and you will remain young in body.
The realities of God and nature surpass infinitely in beauty and goodness all
the imagination of men. It is thus that the world-weary are people who have
never known how to be happy; and those who are disillusioned prove by their
dislikes {276} that they have only drunk of muddy streams. To enjoy even the
animal pleasures of life one must have the moral sense; and those who calumniate
existence have certainly abused it.
High magic, as we have proved, leads man back to the laws of the purest
morality. Either he finds a thing holy or makes it holy, says an adept --- "Vel
sanctum invenit, vel sanctum facit;" because it makes us understand that in
order to be happy, even in this world, one must be holy.
To be holy! that is easy to say; but how give one's self faith when one no
longer believes? How re-discover a taste for virtue in a heart faded by vice?
One must have recourse to the four words of science: to know, to dare, to will,
and to keep silence.
One must still one's dislikes, study duty, and begin by practising it as though
one loved it.
You are an unbeliever, and you wish to make yourself a Christian?
Perform the exercises of a Christian, pray regularly, using the Christian
formulae; approach the sacraments as if you had faith, and faith will come. That
is the secret of the Jesuits, contained in the Spiritual Exercises of St.
Ignatius.
By similar exercises, a fool, if he will it with perseverance, would become a
wise man.<<If the fool would but persist in his folly, he would become wise. ---
WILLIAM BLAKE.>>
By changing the habits of the soul one certainly changes those of the body; we
have already said so, and we have explained the method.
What contributes above all to age us by making us ugly? Hatred and bitterness,
the unfavourable judgments which {277} we make of others, our rages of hurt
vanity, and our ill-satisfied passions. A kindly and gentle philosophy would
avoid all these evils.
If we close our eyes to the defects of our neighbour, and only consider his good
qualities, we shall find good and benevolence everywhere. The most perverse man
has a good side to him, and softens when one knows how to take him. If you had
nothing in common with the vices of men, you would not even perceive them.
Friendship, and the devotions which it inspires, are found even in prisons and
in convict stations. The horrible Lacenaire faithfully returned any money which
had been lent to him, and frequently acted with generosity and kindness. I have
no doubt that in the life of crime which Cartouche and Mandrin led there were
acts of virtue fit to draw tears from the eyes. There has never been any one
absolutely bad or absolutely good. "There is none good but God," said the best
of the Masters.
That quality in ourselves which we call zeal for virtue is often nothing but a
masterful secret self-love, a jealousy in disguise, and a proud instinct of
contradiction. "When we see manifest disorders and scandalous sinners," say
mystical theologians, "let us believe that God is submitting them to greater
tests than those with which He tries us, that certainly, or at least very
probably, we are not as good as they are, and should do much worse in their
place."
Peace! Peace! this is the supreme welfare of the soul, and it is to give us this
that Christ came to the world.
"Glory to God in the highest, peace upon earth, and good will toward men!" cried
the Angels of Heaven at the birth of the Saviour. {278}
The ancient fathers of Christianity counted an eighth deadly sin: it was Sorrow.
In fact, to the true Christian even repentance is not a sorrow; it is a
consolation, a joy, and a triumph. "I wished evil, and I wish it no more; I was
dead and I am alive." The father of the Prodigal son has killed the fatted calf
because his son has returned. What can he do? Tears and embarrassment, no doubt!
but above all joy!
There is only one sad thing in the world, and that is sin and folly. Since we
are delivered, let us laugh and shout for joy, for we are saved, and all those
who loved us in their lives rejoice in heaven!
We all bear within ourselves a principle of death and a principle of
immortality. Death is the beast, and the beast produces always bestial
stupidity. God does not love fools, for his divine spirit is called the spirit
of intelligence. Stupidity expiates itself by suffering and slavery. The stick
is made for beasts.
Suffering is always a warning. So much the worse for him who does not understand
it! When Nature tightens the rein, it is that we are swerving; when she plies
the whip, it is that danger is imminent. Woe, then, to him who does not reflect!
When we are ripe for death, we leave life without regret, and nothing would make
us take it back; but when death is premature, the soul regrets life, and a
clever thaumaturgist would be able to recall it to the body. The sacred books
indicate to us the proceeding which must be employed in such a case. The Prophet
Elisha and the Apostle St. Paul employed it with success. The deceased must be
magnetized {279} by placing the feet on his feet, the hands on his hands, the
mouth on his mouth. Then concentrate the whole will for a long time, call to
itself the escaped soul, using all the loving thoughts and mental caresses of
which one is capable. If the operator inspires in that soul much affection or
great respect, if in the thought which he communicates magnetically to it the
thaumaturgist can persuade it that life is still necessary to it, and that happy
days are still in store for it below, it will certainly return, and for the man
of everyday science the apparent death will have been only a lethargy.
It was after a lethargy of this kind that William Postel, recalled to life by
Mother Jeanne, reappeared with a new youth, and called himself no longer
anything but Postel the Resurrected, "Postellus restitutus."
In the year 1799, there was in the Faubourg St. Antoine, at Paris, a blacksmith
who gave himself out to be an adept of hermetic science. His name was Leriche,
and he passed for having performed miraculous cures and even resurrections by
the use of the universal medicine. A ballet girl of the Opera, who believed in
him, came one day to see him, and said to him, weeping, that her lover had just
died. M. Leriche went out with her to the house of death. As he entered, a
person who was going out, said to him: "It is useless for you to go upstairs, he
died six hours ago." "Never mind," said the blacksmith, "since I am here I will
see him." He went upstairs, and found a corpse frozen in every part except in
the hollow of the stomach, where he thought that he still felt a little heat. He
had a big fire made, massaged his whole body with hot napkins, rubbed him with
the universal medicine dissolved in spirit of wine. [His pretended universal
medicine {280} must have been a powder containing mercury analogous to the
kermes<<Made by boiling black antimony sulphide with sodium carbonate solution.
Used in gout and rheumatism and some skin diseases on the continent, rarely in
England. --- TRANS.>> of the druggist.] Meanwhile the mistress of the dead man
wept and called him back to life with the most tender words. After an hour and a
half of these attentions, Leriche held a mirror before the patient's face, and
found the glass slightly clouded. They redoubled their efforts, and soon
obtained a still better marked sign of life. They then put him in a well warmed
bed, and a few hours afterwards he was entirely restored to life. The name of
this person was Candy. He lived from that time without ever being ill. In 1845
he was still alive, and was living at Place du Chevalier du Guet, 6. He would
tell the story of his resurrection to any one who would listen to him, and gave
much occasion for laughter to the doctors and wiseacres of his quarter. The good
man consoled himself in the vein of Galileo, and answered them: "You may laugh
as much as you like. All I know is, that the death certificate was signed and
the burial licence made out; eighteen hours later they were going to bury me,
and here I am."
CHAPTER III
THE GRAND ARCANUM OF DEATH
WE often become sad in thinking that the most beautiful life must finish, and
the approach of the terrible unknown that one calls death disgusts us with all
the joys of existence.
Why be born, if one must live so little? Why bring up {281} with so much care
children who must die? Such is the question of human ignorance in its most
frequent and its saddest doubts.
This, too, is what the human embryo may vaguely ask itself at the approach of
that birth which is about to throw it into an unknown world by stripping it of
its protective envelope. Let us study the mystery of birth, and we shall have
the key of the great arcanum of death!
Thrown by the laws of Nature into the womb of a woman, the incarnated spirit
very slowly wakes, and creates for itself with effort organs which will later be
indispensable, but which as they grow increase its discomfort in its present
situation. The happiest period of the life of the embryo is that when, like a
chrysalis, it spreads around it the membrane which serves it for refuge, and
which swims with it in a nourishing and preserving fluid. At that time it is
free, and does not suffer. It partakes of the universal life, and receives the
imprint of the memories of Nature which will later determine the configuration
of its body and the form of its features. That happy age may be called the
childhood of the embryo.
Adolescence follows; the human form becomes distinct, and its sex is determined;
a movement takes place in the maternal egg which resembles the vague reveries of
that age which follows upon childhood. The placenta, which is the exterior and
the real body of the foetus, feels germinating in itself something unknown,
which already tends to break it and escape. The child then enters more
distinctly into the life of dreams. Its brain, acting as a mirror of that of its
mother, reproduces with so much force her imaginations, that it communicates
their form to its own limbs. Its mother is for it at {282} that time what God is
for us, a Providence unknown and invisible, to which it aspires to the point of
identifying itself with everything that she admires. It holds to her, it lives
by her, although it does not see her, and would not even know how to understand
her. If it was able to philosophize, it would perhaps deny the personal
existence and intelligence of that mother which is for it as yet only a fatal
prison and an apparatus of preservation. Little by little, however, this
servitude annoys it; it twists itself, it suffers, it feels that its life is
about to end. Then comes an hour of anguish and convulsion; its bonds break; it
feels that it is about to fall into the gulf of the unknown. It is accomplished;
it falls, it is crushed with pain, a strange cold seizes it, it breathes a last
sigh which turns into a first cry; it is dead to embryonic life, it is born to
human life!
During embryonic life it seemed to it that the placenta was its body, and it was
in fact its special embryonic body, a body useless for another life, a body
which had to be thrown off as an unclean thing at the moment of birth.
The body of our human life is like a second envelope, useless for the third
life, and for that reason we throw it aside at the moment of our second birth.
Human life compared to heavenly life is veritably an embryo. When our evil
passions kill us, Nature miscarries, and we are born before our time for
eternity, which exposes us to that terrible dissolution which St. John calls the
second death.
According to the constant tradition of ecstatics, the abortions of human life
remain swimming in the terrestrial atmosphere which they are unable to surmount,
and which {283} little by little absorbs them and drowns them. They have human
form, but always lopped and imperfect; one lacks a hand, another an arm, this
one is nothing but a torso, and that is a pale rolling head. They have been
prevented from rising to heaven by a wound received during human life, a moral
wound which has caused a physical deformity, and through this wound, little by
little, all of their existence leaks away.
Soon their moral soul will be naked, and in order to hide its shame by making
itself at all costs a new veil, it will be obliged to drag itself into the outer
darkness, and pass slowly through the dead sea, the slumbering waters of ancient
chaos. These wounded souls are the larvae of the second formation of the embryo;
they nourish their airy bodies with a vapour of shed blood, and they fear the
point of the sword. Frequently they attach themselves to vicious men and live
upon their lives, as the embryo lives in its mother's womb. In these
circumstances, they are able to take the most horrible forms to represent the
frenzied desires of those who nourish them, and it is these which appear under
the figures of demons to the wretched operators of the nameless works of black
magic.
These larvae fear the light, above all the light of the mind. A flash of
intelligence is sufficient to destroy them as by a thunderbolt, and hurl them
into that Dead Sea which one must not confuse with the sea in Palestine
so-called. All that we reveal in this place belongs to the tradition of seers,
and can only stand before science in the name of that exceptional philosophy,
which Paracelsus called the philosophy of sagacity, "philosophia sagax."
CHAPTER IV
ARCANUM ARCANORUM
THE great arcanum --- that is to say, the unutterable and inexplicable secret
--- is the absolute knowledge of good and of evil.
"When you have eaten the fruit of this tree, you will be as the gods," said the
Serpent.
{Illustration on page 285 described:
This is a pentagram with point down and a white ring in the center. At the ends
of the points are black disks. The pentagram itself is black. There are words in
white on the Disks, from the upper right, clockwise: "DESPOTISME", MENSONCE",
"NEANT", "IGNORANCE", "ABSURDITE". There are words in white in the points, same
order: "Contre toute Justice", "Contre toute verite", "Contre toute etre",
"Contre toute science", "Contre toute raison". In the central ring in three
lines: "SATAN EST LA HAINE".}
"If you eat of it, you will die," replied Divine Wisdom.
Thus good and evil bear fruit on one same tree, and from one same root.
Good personified is God.
Evil personified is the Devil.
To know the secret or the formula of God is to be God.
To know the secret or the formula of the Devil is to be the Devil. {285}
To wish to be at the same time God and Devil is to absorb in one's self the most
absolute antinomy, the two most strained contrary forces; it is the wish to shut
up in one's self an infinite antagonism.
It is to drink a poison which would extinguish the suns and consume the
worlds.<<An allusion to Shiva, the patron of adepts, who drank the poison
generated by the churning of the 'Milk Ocean.' (See Bhagavata Purana Skandha
VIII, Chaps. 5 - 12.) Levi therefore means in this passage the exact contrary of
what he pretends to mean. Otherwise this "Be good, and you will be happy"
chapter would scarcely deserve the title "Arcanum Arcanorum." --- O.M.>>
{Illustration on page 286 described:
This is a pentagram with an upright isosceles triangle in the midst, lower
angles touching the two lower inner angles of the pentagram. There are white
disks touching the points from the outside. The pentagram is white and
circumscribed by a nimbus having five white wedge-rays coming from the inner
angles and opening at the outer edge of the nimbus. The white disks have each a
thin nimbus without rays and the following words, clockwise from top: "CHARITE",
"MYSTERE", "SACRIFICE", "PROVIDENCE", "PERFECTION". The points have the
following text inside, set in script type, same order: "au dessus de tout etre",
"au dessus de toute science", "au dessus de toute justice", "au dessus de toute
raison", "au dessus de toute idee". In the central triangle are three lines with
the words: "DIEU EST Yod-Heh-Vau-Heh-Aleph-Heh-Yod-Heh.}
It is to put on the consuming robe of Deianira.
It is to devote one's self to the promptest and most terrible of all deaths.
Woe to him who wishes to know too much! For if excessive and rash knowledge does
not kill him it will make him mad. {286}
To eat the fruit of the Tree of Knowledge of Good and Evil, is to associate evil
with good, and assimilate the one to the other.
It is to cover the radiant countenance of Osiris with the mask of Typhon.
It is to raise the sacred veil of Isis; it is to profane the sanctuary.
{Illustration on page 287 described:
This is in shape exactly the same as the illustration on page 282, save that
there are words in the five wedge rays and there is no triangle in the center.
Instead, the sides of the pentagram are extended as dotted lines to form an
inverse pentagon. The white disks have the following text, clockwise from top:
"INTELLIGENCE", "PROGRES", "AMOUR", "SAGESSE", "LUMIERE". The points have the
following text, same order: "dans ses rapports avec l' etre", "dans ses rapports
avec la science", "dans ses rapports avec la justice", "dans ses rapports avec
la raison", "dans ses rapports avec la verite". The rays have the following
text, clockwise from upper right: "Genie", "Enthousiasme", "Harmonie", "Beaute",
"Rectitude". The following words are in the center, in three rows: "L'ESPRIT
SAINT EST".}
The rash man who dares to look at the sun without protection becomes blind, and
from that moment for him the sun is black.
We are forbidden to say more on this subject; we shall conclude our revelation
by the figure of three pentacles.
These three stars will explain it sufficiently. They may be compared with that
which we have caused to be drawn at the head of our "History of magic." By
reuniting the four, one may arrive at the understanding of the Great Arcanum of
Arcana. {287}
It now remains for us to complete our work by giving the great key of William
Postel.
{Illustration on page 288 described:
This is bounded by a rectangle with height about twice width. The center of the
illustration is composed of a hexagram of two triangles, points to top and
bottom. This is circumscribed by a dark ring and surmounts concentric rings
inward from the outer one as white, dark, white, dark --- at which point the
inner angles of the hexagram begin. The upper triangle of the hexagram is light
and contains a bearded human head and shoulders at top, feet with draped legs to
the lower points. The down-ward pointing triangle has the same in dark with a
matching dark figure. Surmounting the center of the hexagram and completely
obscuring bodies and arms is the classic Roman Agricultural magical square of
five lines: SATOR, AREPO, TENET, OPERA, ROTAS. The outer points of the hexagram
extend lines radially to irregularly divide the space to the rectangular border,
upper and lower points excepted. Above the upper point are the words "Keter Pole
arctique" and there is a nob at that spot with a line pulled diagonally upward
to the left by an eagle, facing counter clockwise. Above the eagle is the word
"NETSAH", to the right "L Air". The line from the upper right point has "l' Ete"
above it and the figure of a winged lion below, facing outward and progressing
upward. The lion has "HOD" written to the right of its head and vertically
extended left foreleg, "Le Feu" below its tail and downwardly extended right
hind leg. The line from the lower right point is below this figure, and "l'
Automne" is below this line. The line from the upper left point has "les
Printemps" written above it. Below this is a bull, no wings and facing downward.
"JESOD" is above the bull's tail, and "La Terre" is below the head. Next below
is the line from the lower left point, with "l' hiver" below that. Below the
lower point are the words "Pole antartique" and "L' eau". There is a nob at that
spot, with a winged angel facing right and pulling the nob with a diagonally
downward line to the right. "MALCHVT" is written below the Angel. The letters
"HB:Yod" "HB:Heh " "HB:Vau " "HB:Heh " are picked out by dots with three
clustered radial dashes in or near the four corners, starting with the upper
right (clockwise or counter-clockwise makes no difference). These dot-letters
are the late Medieval style, and either represent stars or fires. The Hebrew
letters are formed by straight line segments connecting the dots. The Hay's have
three dots to the upper bar: ends and center with the dashes to the top. The
verticals on the Hays have three dots and join the upper bar to add a fourth,
with the three having their dashes facing outward. The Yod is composed of two
lines, dots at ends and intersection. Dashes at top vertical, center dot dashes
to the right and lower dot dashes to left. The Vau has three dots, ends and
center with dashes in same directions as the Vau. The figure is completed by two
lines of flourished symbols at the bottom: Larger upper line looks like: 3 or h
(bottom end of corner Vau) Z P 7 R 3(or h) 4 (reversed), but is intended to
represent the seven planets starting with Saturn and ending with Jupiter.. The
smaller lower line looks like: M Z P Z 3(or h) N 7 M N 3(or h) F (reversed) N,
but is intended to represent the twelve signs of the Zodiac. These symbols are
somewhat doubtful in identity, owing to the obscuration of using letter and
number shapes to conceal the standard Astrological symbols and to the jumbled
sequence.}
This key is that of the Tarot. There are four suits, wands, caps,{sic} swords,
coins or pentacles, corresponding to the four cardinal points of Heaven, and the
four living creatures or symbolic signs and numbers and letters formed in a
circle; then the seven planetary signs, with the indication of their repetition
signified by the three colours, to symbolize the natural world, the human world
and the divine world, whose {288} hieroglyphic emblems compose the twenty-one
trumps of our Tarot.
In the centre of the ring may be perceived the double triangle forming the Star
or Seal of Solomon.<<WEH NOTE: This is the classic mis-identification. The seal
is that of David in Jewish lore, Solomon having the five-pointed star.>> It is
the religious and metaphysical triad analogous to the natural triad of universal
generation in the equilibrated substance.
Around the triangle is the cross which divides the circle into four equal<<WEH
NOTE: Nowhere near four equal, Postal's drawing intends to merge the six with
the four.>> parts, and thus the symbols of religion are united to the signs of
geometry; faith completes science, and science acknowledge faith.
By the aid of this key one can understand the universal symbolism of the ancient
world, and note its striking analogies with our dogmas. One will thus recognize
that the divine revelation is permanent in nature and humanity. One will feel
that Christianity only brought light and heat into the universal temple by
causing to descend therein the spirit of charity, which is the Very Life of God
Himself.
EPILOGUE
Thanks be unto thee, O my God, that thou hast called me to this admirable light!
Thou, the Supreme Intelligence and the Absolute Life of those numbers and those
forces which obey thee in order to people the infinite with inexhaustible
creation! Mathematics proves thee, the harmonies of Nature proclaim thee, all
forms as they pass by salute thee and adore thee!
Abraham knew thee, Hermes divined thee, Pythagoras calculated thee, Plato, in
every dream of his genius, aspired to {289} thee; but only one initiate, only
one sage has revealed thee to the children of earth, one alone could say of
thee: "I and my Father are one." Glory then be his, since all his glory is
thine!
Thou knowest, O my Father, that he who writes these lines has struggled much and
suffered much; he has endured poverty, calumny, proscription, prison, the
forsaking of those whom he loved: --- and yet never did he find himself unhappy,
since truth and justice remained to him for consolation!
Thou alone art holy, O God of true hearts and upright souls, and thou knowest if
ever I thought myself pure in thy sight! Like all men I have been the plaything
of human passions. At last I conquered them, or rather thou has conquered them
in me; and thou hast given me for a rest the deep peace of those who have no
goal and no ambition but Thyself.
I love humanity, because men, as far as they are not insensate, are never wicked
but through error or through weakness. Their natural disposition is to love
good, and it is through that love that thou hast given them as a support in all
their trials that they must sooner or later be led back to the worship of
justice by the love of truth.
Now let my books go where thy Providence shall send them! If they contain the
words of thy wisdom they will be stronger than oblivion. If, on the contrary,
they contain only errors, I know at least that my love of justice and of truth
will survive them, and that thus immortality cannot fail to treasure the
aspirations and wishes of my soul hat thou didst create immortal! {290}
CONTENTS
PAGE
TRANSLATORS NOTE . . . . . . v
INTRODUCTION. . . . . . . . vii
PREFACE . . . . . . . . . . xi
PART I (RELIGIOUS MYSTERIES) . . . . . . 1
PRELIMINARY CONSIDERATIONS . . . . . . 1
FIRST ARTICLE . . . . . . . . 12
SKETCH OF THE PROPHETIC THEOLOGY OF NUMBERS . . . 14
ARTICLE II . . . . . . . . 72
ARTICLE III . . . . . . . . 77
ARTICLE IV . . . . . . . . 82
ARTICLE V . . . . . . . . 89
RESUME OF PART I . . . . . . . 91
PART II (PHILOSOPHICAL MYSTERIES) . . . . . 98
PART III (MYSTERIES OF NATURE). . . . . . 108
FIRST BOOK CHAPTER I . . . . . . . 110
CHAPTER II. . . . . . . 117
CHAPTER III . . . . . . 127
CHAPTER IV . . . . . . 226
BOOK II CHAPTER I . . . . . . . 234
CHAPTER II . . . . . . 239
CHAPTER III . . . . . . 244
CHAPTER IV . . . . . . 256
PART IV (PRACTICAL SECRETS) INTRODUCTION . . . 267
CHAPTER I . . . . . . 270
CHAPTER II . . . . . . 274
CHAPTER III . . . . . . 281
CHAPTER IV . . . . . . 285
EPILOGUE . . . . . . 289